20
English

stutikusumānjaliḥ

Shiva
| Stuti
| by Jagaddhara Bhatta
stutikusumāñjaliḥ oṃ śrīgaṇeśāya namaḥ | namaḥ śivāya niḥśeṣakleśapraśamaśāline | triguṇagranthidurbhedabhavabhedavibhedine || sūcipatram | 1. stutiprastāvanā prathamaṃ stotram | 2. namaskārātmakaṃ dvitīyaṃ stotram | 3. āśīrvādākhyaṃ tṛtīyaṃ stotram | 4. maṅgalāṣṭakaṃ caturthaṃ stotram | 5. kavikāvyapraśaṃsākhyaṃ pañcamaṃ stotram | 6. harāṣṭakaṃ ṣaṣṭhaṃ stotram | 7. sevābhinandanaṃ saptamaṃ stotram | 8. śaraṇāśrayaṇaṃ aṣṭamaṃ stotram | 9. kṛpaṇākrandanaṃ navamaṃ stotram | 10. karuṇākrandanaṃ daśamaṃ stotram | 11. dīnākrandanaṃ ekādaśaṃ stotram | 12. tamaḥśamanaṃ dvādaśaṃ stotram | 13. prabhuprasādanaṃ trayodaśaṃ stotram | 14. hitastotraṃ caturdaśaṃ stotram | 15. karuṇārādhanaṃ pañcadaśaṃ stotram | 16. upadeśanaṃ ṣoḍaśaṃ stotram | 17. bhaktistotraṃ saptadaśaṃ stotram | 18. siddhistotraṃ aṣṭādaśaṃ stotram | 19. bhagavadrūpavarṇanaṃ ekonaviṃśaṃ stotram | 20. hasitastotraṃ viṃśaṃ stotram | 21. ardhanārīśvarastotraṃ ekaviṃśaṃ stotram | 22. kādipadabandhastotraṃ dvāviṃśaṃ stotram | 23. śa‍ṛṅkhalābandhastotraṃ trayoviṃśaṃ stotram | 24. dvipadayamakaṃ caturviṃśaṃ stotram | 25. rucirañjanākhyaṃ pañcaviṃśaṃ stotram | 26. pādādiyamakastotraṃ ṣaḍviṃśaṃ stotram | 27. pādamadhyayamakākhyaṃ saptaviṃśaṃ stotram | 28. pādāntayamakastotraṃ aṣṭāviṃśaṃ stotram | 29. ekāntarayamakastotraṃ ekonatriṃśaṃ stotram | 30. mahāyamakastotraṃ triṃśaṃ stotram | 31. natopadeśastotraṃ ekatriṃśaṃ stotram | 32. śaraṇāgatoddharaṇaṃ dvātriṃśaṃ stotram | 33. karṇapūrastotraṃ trayastriṃśaṃ stotram | 34. agryavarṇastotraṃ catustriṃśaṃ stotram | 35. īśvarapraśaṃsāstotraṃ pañcatriṃśaṃ stotram | 36. stutiphalaprāptistotraṃ ṣaṭtriṃśaṃ stotram | 37. stutipraśaṃsāstotraṃ saptatriṃśaṃ stotram | 38. puṇyapariṇāmastotraṃ aṣṭātriṃśaṃ stotram | 39. granthakarturvaṃśavarṇanam | 1. stutiprastāvanā prathamaṃ stotram hlādavadbhiramalairanargalairjīvanairaghaharairnavairiyam | svāminaḥ klamaśamakṣamaiḥ kṣaṇaṃ roddhumarhati manaḥ sarasvatī || 1|| svāminaḥ sthiraguṇā savakrimā karṇayoramṛtavarṣiṇī manaḥ | karttumarhati muhūrttamujjhitasvairacāpalamiyaṃ sarasvatī || 2|| ramyarītiranaghā guṇojjvalā cāruvṛttarucirā rasānvitā | rañjayatviyamalaṅkṛtā manaḥ svāminaḥ praṇayinī sarasvatī || 3|| sattvadhāma varalābhayācitaślāghyavarṇaviśadā viśatviyam | nirmalaṃ saghanakālaviplavā mānasaṃ smarajitaḥ sarasvatī || 4|| bhaktitaḥ sapadi sarvamaṅgalā bodhitā nijadhiyaiva me'nayā | ārirādhayiṣatīśvaraṃ varaṃ labdhumīpsitamiyaṃ sarasvatī || 5|| omiti sphuradurasyanāhataṃ garbhagumphitasamastavāṅmayam | dandhvanīti hṛdi yatparaṃ padaṃ tatsadakṣaramupāsmahe mahaḥ || 6|| bhānunā tuhinabhānunā bṛhadbhānunā ca vinivartitaṃ na yat | yena tajjhagiti(jhaṭiti)śāntimāntaraṃ dhvāntameti tadupāsmahe mahaḥ || 7|| kīcakādikuhareṣvivā'mbaraṃ bimbamambaramaṇerivormiṣu | ekameva cidacitsvanekadhā yaccakāsti tadupāsmahe mahaḥ || 8|| tarkakarkaśagirāmagocaraṃ svānubhūtisamayaikasākṣiṇam | mīlitākhilavikalpaviplavaṃ pārameśvaramupāsmahe mahaḥ || 9|| svāvabhāsamayameva māyayā yena bhinnamavabhāsyate jagat | citramindradhanurabhralekhayā bhāsvateva tadupāsmahe mahaḥ || 10|| hṛdguhāgahanagehagūhitaṃ bhāsitā'khilajagattrayodaram | kandakandaradarīmukhodgataprāṇamārutakṛtasthirasthitim || 11|| tyaktasarvadaśamakṣayodayaṃ rūpavarjitamabhittisaṃśrayam | yaṃ nirañjanamanakṣagocaraṃ dīpamadbhutamuśanti taṃ stumaḥ || 12|| yasya śasyamahaso nirargalaṃ yogamāpya caraṇābjareṇubhiḥ | adbhutāṃ dadhati nīrajaskatāṃ taṃ jagatpatimumāpatiṃ stumaḥ || 13|| cārucandrakalayopaśobhitaṃ bhogibhiḥ saha gṛhītasauhṛdam | abhyupetaghanakālaśātravaṃ nīlakaṇṭhamatikautukaṃ stumaḥ || 14|| icchayaiva bhuvanāni bhāvayan yaḥ priyopakaraṇagraho'pi san | apriyopakaraṇagraho'bhavat taṃ svaśaktisacivaṃ śivaṃ stumaḥ || 15|| padmasadmakaramardalālitaṃ padmanābhanayanābjapūjitam | padmabandhumukuṭāṃśurañjitaṃ pādapadmayugamaiśvaraṃ stumaḥ || 16|| aṅghriyugmamamareśamastakasragbhirujjvalamuraśca bhasmabhiḥ | śekharañca himaraśmiraśmibhiryo bibharti tamupāsmahe vibhum || 17|| mūrdhni candrakarasundaratviṣaṃ phenapiṇḍaparipāṇḍurasmitām | dehināṃ vahati tāpahāriṇīṃ siddhasindhumatanuṃ tanuṃ ca yaḥ || 18|| karttumutsahata eva sevako yasya kasya na manaḥ sakautukam | naiti śāntanavavigraho'pi san bhīṣmatāṃ na ca vicitravīryatām || 19|| āpatantamayamaṃ yamaṃ puro yaḥ savigrahamavigrahaṃ vyadhāt | darpakaṃ vyadhita yo'pyadarpakaṃ taṃ viṣādamaviṣādamāśraye || 20|| ambareṇa gananena saṃvṛtaṃ jīvanaiḥ śirasi vāribhiḥ śritam | bhogibhiśca bhujagairvibhūṣitaṃ śaṅkaraṃ śubhakaraṃ bhajāmahe || 21|| pāvakena śikhinopaśobhitaṃ bhāsitaṃ sitarucā himāṃśunā | bhāsvatā ca raviṇā virājitaṃ locanatrayamupāsmahe vibhoḥ || 22|| abhayaṅkaramāśritaṃ svarūpaṃ dadhaduddāmasamagradhāmayogam | śucitārakamīśvarasya netratritayaṃ śūlaśikhātrayaṃ ca vande || 23|| mīladvilocanasamudgasamudgatā'śru- śrotaḥsru tisnapitamūlakapolabhāgāḥ | devaṃ śaśāṅkakalayā kalitā'vataṃsaṃ śaṃsanti santa iha śaṅkara śaṅkareti || 24|| bhrānto'smi vaiśasamaye samaye'hamatra mithyaiva digbhramahato mahato'pamārgān | viśramya nandanavane navane śivasya khedastu samprati sameti sa me'vasānam || 25|| yatpārvaṇendukarasundaravāhahaṃsa- saṃvāsadurlalitayā'pi vacodhidevyā | viśramyate manasi naḥ samale salīlaṃ tatsaubhagaṃ bhagavato jayatīndumauleḥ || 26|| yaṃ bhūṣayanti kamanīyamahīnabhogāḥ stutvā bhavanti kṛtino yamahīnabhogāḥ | cittocitaṃ tamapahāya mahīnabhogāḥ kartuṃ paratra dhṛtasaṃyama ! hī na bho gāḥ || 27|| avāpya gurubhirguṇairjagati gauravaṃ dhyāyata- stamīramaṇaśekharaṃ bhavati gauravandhyā yataḥ | atastamumayā samaṃ kṛtamahāvilāsaṃ prati stutau viracitā mayā matiranāvilā samprati || 28|| mattvā sadyaḥ sukṛtasulabhaṃ durlabhaṃ jīvalokaṃ labdhvā sarvavyasanaśamanaṃ mitramekaṃ vivekam | dhanyāḥ kecitkṛtakumudinīkāntalekhā'vataṃsaṃ haṃsaṃ śaṃsantyamalamadhurairbhaktisiktairvacobhiḥ || 29|| antaḥśūnyaṃ guṇavirahitaṃ nīrasaṃ sargahīnaṃ kāvyaṃ hṛdyaṃ nanu sumanasāṃ na sthalāmbhoruhābham | tatrāpīśaḥ śravaṇapuline gāḍharāgānubandha- prodyadbhaktipraguṇitamadaḥ karttumarhatyagarham || 30|| athavā'mṛtabinduvarṣiṇīndudyutirānandamamandamarpayantī | nayati dhruvamārdratāmiyaṃ gīrgirijājīvitanāthamindukāntam || 31|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``stutiprastāvanā'' nāmakaṃ prathamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 2. namaskārātmakaṃ dvitīyaṃ stotram oṃ namaḥ paramārthaikarūpāya paramātmane | svecchāvabhāsitā'satyabhedabhinnāya śambhave || 1|| namaḥ śivāya niḥśeṣakleśapraśamaśāline | triguṇagranthidurbhedabhavabhedavibhedine || 2|| namaḥ samastagīrvāṇakirīṭaghaṭitāṅghraye | jagannagaranirmmāṇanarmaśarmadakarmmaṇe || 3|| namastamasvatīkāntakhaṇḍamaṇḍitamaulaye | tāpāndhakāranirvedakhedavicchedavedine || 4|| namaḥ samastasaṅkalpakalpanākalpaśākhine | vikāsikalikākāntakalāpāya svayambhuve || 5|| namastamaḥparābhūtabhūtavargānukampine | śvetabhānubṛhadbhānubhānubhāsitacakṣuṣe || 6|| namaḥ śamanahuṅkārakatarā''turaharṣiṇe | bhavāya bhavadāvāgnivivignā'mṛtavarṣiṇe || 7|| namaḥ samadakandarpadarpajvarabharacchide | durvārabhavarugbhaṅgabhiṣaje vṛṣalakṣmaṇe || 8|| namo janmajarāmṛtyubhītisātaṅkapāline | karuṇāmṛtasamparkapeśalāya kapāline || 9|| namo nisarganirvighnaprasādāmṛtasindhave | saṃsāramarusantāpatāpitāpannabandhave || 10|| namaḥ sāndrā'mṛtasyandighanadhvanitaśobhine | mahākālāya bhīṣmoṣmabhavagrīṣmaklamacchide || 11|| namo vāṅmanasātītamahimne parameṣṭhine | triguṇāṣṭaguṇā'nantaguṇanirguṇamūrttaye || 12|| haṃsāya dīrghadoṣāntakāriṇe'mbaracāriṇe | svamahomahimadhvastasamastatamase namaḥ || 13|| yaḥ suvarṇena candreṇa gāṅgeyenāgnijanmanā | kāñcanenaśriyaṃ dhatte tasmai smarajite namaḥ || 14|| nijāṅgabhaṅgabhaṅgyāpi bhaktānugrahakāriṇe | namaḥ stambhitajambhāribhujastambhāya śambhave || 15|| niḥsāmānyāya mānyāya nyāyamārgopadeśine | mūrdhanyāya vadānyāya dhanyāya svāmine namaḥ || 16|| namaḥ saṃhṛtakālāya kālāyasagalatviṣe | gaṅgādhautakalāpāya kalāpāyamavindate || 17|| jiṣṇunā jiṣṇunā lokān viṣṇunā prabhaviṣṇunā | brahmaṇā brahmaṇādyena stutāya svāmine namaḥ || 18|| kulaśailadalaṃ pūrṇasuvarṇagirikarṇikam | namo'dhitiṣṭhate'nantanālaṃ kamalaviṣṭaram || 19|| nimittamantareṇāpi yaḥ sapaṅkajanābhaye | pravartate vibhustasmai namaḥ paṅkajanābhaye || 20|| namaḥ somārdhadehāya somārdhakṛtamaulaye | śvetābhayasamudbhūtaśvetābhayaśase namaḥ || 21|| vinatānandanaṃ nāgavigrahogramukhaṃ dṛśā | vināyakamupāsīnaṃ bhajate svāmine namaḥ || 22|| namo brahmaharitryakṣaśravase bhavasetave | jagatsargasthitihrāsahetave vṛṣaketave || 23|| karṇikādiṣviva svarṇamarṇavādiṣvivodakam | bhediṣvabhedi yattasmai parasmai mahase namaḥ || 24|| yamekameva śrayato na jāyate spṛhā parasmai mahate'pi nākine | namaḥ samastāpadupetapālana- vratāya tasmai vibhave pinākine || 25|| vidhau jagatsargavidhau yadāhitaṃ pratiṣṭhitaṃ yatsthitikāraṇe vidhau | samūḍhamūḍhārdhavidhau laye ca yat parāya tasmai mahase namo namaḥ || 26|| namaḥ samutpāditatārakadviṣe namastridhāmāśritatārakatviṣe | namo jagattārakapuṇyakarmmaṇe namo namastārakarājamaulaye || 27|| namo namaste'mṛtabhānumaulaye namo namaste'mṛtasiddhidāyine | namo namaste'mṛtakumbhapāṇaye namo namaste'mṛtabhairavātmane || 28|| namastamaḥpāraparārdhyavṛttaye namaḥ samastādhvavibhaktaśaktaye | namaḥ kramavyastasamastamūrttaye namaḥ śamasthārpitabhaktimuktaye || 29|| vijayajayapradāya śabarāya varāya namaḥ sakalakalaṅkasaṅkaraharāya harāya namaḥ | jagadagadapragalbhavibhavāya bhavāya namaḥ pravaravaraprakāśitaśivāya śivāya namaḥ || 30|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrījagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``namaskārātmakaṃ'' nāmakaṃ dvitīyaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 3. āśīrvādākhyaṃ tṛtīyaṃ stotram nityaṃ nirāvṛti nijānubhavaikamāna- mānandadhāma jagadaṅkurabījamekam | digdeśakālakalanādisamastahasta- mardāsahaṃ diśatu śarma mahanmaho naḥ || 1|| vyomnīva nīradabharaḥ sarasīva vīci- vyūhaḥ sahasramahasīva sudhāṃśudhāma | yasminnidaṃ jagadudeti ca līyate ca tacchāmbhavaṃ bhavatu vaibhavamṛddhaye naḥ || 2|| lokatrayasthitilayodayakelikāraḥ kāryyeṇa yo hariharadruhiṇatvameti | devaḥ sa viśvajanavāṅmanasātivṛtta- śaktiḥ śivaṃ diśatu śaśvadanaśvaraṃ vaḥ || 3|| sarvaḥ kilāyamavaśaḥ puruṣāṇukarma- kālādikāraṇagaṇo yadanugraheṇa | viśvaprapañcaracanācaturatvameti sa trāyatāṃ tribhuvanaikamaheśvaro vaḥ || 4|| ekasya yasya sakalaḥ karaṇānapekṣa- jñānakriyasya purataḥ sphurati prapañcaḥ | paśyañjagat karatalā'malakīphalābhaṃ lābhaṃ sa puṣyatu paraṃ parameśvaro vaḥ || 5|| yaḥ kandukairiva purandarapadmasadma- padmāpatiprabhṛtibhiḥ prabhuraprameyaḥ | khelatyalaṅghyamahimā sa himādrikanyā- kāntaḥ kṛtāntadalano laghayatvaghaṃ vaḥ || 6|| sevānamannikhilakhecaramauliratna- raśmicchaṭāpaṭalapāṭalapādapīṭhaḥ | puṣṇātu dhāma kapiśīkṛtaśailaśa‍ṛṅga- tvaṅganmṛgāṅkamadhurākṛtirīśvaro vaḥ || 7|| aṅgaṃ bhujaṅgaracitāṅgadabhaṅgi tuṅgaṃ tvaṅgattaraṅga gaganāṅganasaṅgi gaṅgam | bibhradvibhurvihitaraṅgadanaṅgabhaṅga- maṅgīkarotvaramabhaṅguramiṅgitaṃ vaḥ || 8|| yaḥ kuṇḍamaṇḍalakamaṇḍalumantramudrā- dhyānārcanastutijapādyupadeśayuktyā | bhogāpavargadamanugrahamānatānāṃ vyānañja rañjayatu sa trijagadgururvaḥ || 9|| śambhoradabhraśaradabhratuṣāraśubhraṃ bhrājiṣṇubhūtibharaśībharabhāsvarābham | diśyādvapurbhasalanīlagalaṃ kalaṅkā- laṅkāraśāradaśaśāṅkanibhaṃ śubhaṃ vaḥ || 10|| yenopadiṣṭamanapāyamupāyamāpya svargāpavargavibhavairvibhavo bhavanti | devaḥ sa vaḥ sakalakarmaphalopalambha- visrambhabhūmirabhivāñchitasiddhaye'stu || 11|| mūlojjhitena kalikākalitena tāpa- śāntikṣameṇa namatāmavipallavena | sadyaḥphalena sumanobhirupāsitena sthāṇuḥ śriye'stu bhavatāṃ vapuṣā'dbhutena || 12|| divyāpagāplavanapāvakasevanābhyāṃ vibhrattanuṃ śucimapetakalaṅkaśaṅkām | doṣānuṣaṅgarahitastimiroṣmaśāntyai bhūyāddvijādhipatirīśvaravandito vaḥ || 13|| dānāmbunirbharakarastanayaḥ sa yasya śrīmān sa yasya dhanadaḥ savidhe vidheyaḥ | yaḥ saṃśritaḥ śirasi muktakareṇa rājñā puṣṇātu vaḥ kanakavarṣaghanaḥ sa devaḥ || 14|| nirmatsarau nivasataḥ samamarkacandrau nīrānalāvamṛtahālahalau ca yatra | rājñā navena tadadhiṣṭhitamujjvalena śārvaṃ vapurbhavatu vāñchitasiddhaye vaḥ || 15|| vaktā ca yaḥ sukhayitā ca vibhuḥ śrutīnāṃ vakṣaḥ karaṃ ca vahate kamalāṅkitaṃ yaḥ | yo mūrdhni varṣmaṇi ca haimavatīṃ bibharti traidhaṃ bhavan bhavatu vaḥ sa śivaḥ śivāya || 16|| tāpatrayā'pahṛtaye triśikhaṃ trivarga- siddhyai tridhāmalayanaṃ nayanatrayaṃ ca | triḥsrotaso'pi salilaṃ trimalāpanutyai bhūyāttrilokamahitaṃ tripuradviṣo vaḥ || 17|| yaddarśanā'mṛtasukhānubhavena dhanyā netrotpalāni ciramardhanimīlitāni | dṛṅmārgagocararavīndukaraprasaṅga- bhaṅgyeva bibhrati śivaḥ śivadaḥ sa vo'stu || 18|| kālaṃ dṛśaiva śamayan saphalaprayāsaṃ yaḥ śvetamuttamacamatkṛtikṛccakāra | śvetaṃ yaśaḥ praśamayannasatāṃ satāṃ ca kālaṃ kṛtārthayati yaḥ sa śivo'vatādvaḥ || 19|| babhrurbibhartyalikapāvakasauhṛdaṃ yo yatrāhireti śikhinā saha sāmarasyam | jūṭaḥ sa vaḥ samamarātibhirapyamarṣa- muktāṃ sthitiṃ prathayatu pramathādhipasya || 20|| avyātsa vaḥ śirasi yasya vilocanāgni- jvālāvalīḍhasurasindhujalopagūḍhaḥ | adyāpi vāḍavaśikhāpariṇaddhamugdha- dugdhābdhimadhyaga iva śriyameti candraḥ || 21|| avyātsa vaḥ sukṛtināmalikeṣu dhūlī- paṭṭīkṛteṣu padareṇubhareṇa yasya | dhātākṣarāṇi likhati kṣitipālamauli- mālārcitāṅghrikamalo bhavitā bhuvīti || 22|| śaivī śivaṃ diśatu śītamarīcilekhā jūṭāhiratnakiraṇacchuraṇāruṇā vaḥ | devī navīnanakhalakṣmadhiyā pidhatte yatsaṅkramaṃ kucataṭe paṭapallavena || 23|| devyāstadastu kucacūcukamindumauli- dehārdhabaddhavasateramṛtāptaye vaḥ | abhyeti yanmadanapūjyasuvarṇapīṭha- pṛṣṭhapratiṣṭhitaharinmaṇiliṅgabhaṅgim || 24|| yāḥ kṣīrasindhulaharīvṛtamandarādri- mudrāmanaṅgadamanasya nayanti jūṭam | dvirbhāvitāviralasiddhasarittaraṅgā- stā laṅghayantvaghamagharmaruco ruco vaḥ || 25|| lokatrayā'bhyudayajanmamahī mahīyaḥ sthānādhirohaṇavidhāvadhirohiṇī yā | sā candracūḍamukuṭadhvajavaijayantī jahnoranihnutanayā tanayā'vatādvaḥ || 26|| bhālāgnikīlakalitākhilarandhrabhāgaṃ bhargasya vo diśatu śarma śiraḥkapālam | yatkālavahnivapuṣaḥ pacataḥ prabhūta- bhūtavrajaṃ vrajati tasya mahānasatvam || 27|| cāndraṃ ca dhāma suranirjhariṇī jalaṃ ca hastasthahemakalaśā'mṛtajīvanaṃ ca | snigdhaṃ ca dṛgvilasitaṃ hasitaṃ sitaṃ ca yuṣmākamūṣmaśamanāya bhavantu śambhoḥ || 28|| mūrdhni dyusindhudhavale dhavalendulekhā kailāsaśailaśikhare dhavalaśca vāhaḥ | nīhārahāriṇi vapuṣyapi bhūtireṣā puṣṇātu vaḥ sadṛśasaṅghaṭanā śivasya || 29|| uttaptahemaruci candrakalā kalāpe bālapravālarucire ca kare kapālam | tāmre'dhare ca hasitaṃ sitamadbhuteyaṃ vicchittirinduśirasaḥ kuśalaṃ kriyādvaḥ || 30|| śreyaḥ prayacchatu paraṃ suviśuddhavarṇā pūrṇābhilāṣavibudhādhipavandanīyā | puṇyā kavipravaravāgiva bālacandra- cūḍāmaṇeścaraṇareṇukaṇāvalī vaḥ || 31|| hārīkṛtolbaṇaphaṇīndraphaṇendranīla- nīlacchavicchuraṇaśāramuraḥsthalaṃ vaḥ | puṣṇātu nihnu tanagendrasutākucāgra- kastūrikāmakarikākiṇamindumauleḥ || 32|| yuṣmākamastu navanīlasarojadāma- śyāmadyutiḥ sumataye śitikaṇṭhakaṇṭhaḥ | yaḥ ketakīdhavalavāsukibhogayogā- dnāṅgaughabhinnagaganāṅganabhaṅgimeti || 33|| kṣīrārṇavasya caraṇābjatale nivāsa- māseduṣastanayamapratimaprasādaḥ | yo mūrdhni lālayati bālamasau dayābdhi- rdevastanotu mudamāśritavallabho vaḥ || 34|| yā rājahaṃsaśikhisambhṛtakāntireti sadyastirohitaghanāvaraṇā prasādam | sā prāvṛḍantaśaradādidineṣviva dyauḥ śambhorabhīṣṭaphalapākakṛdastu dṛgvaḥ || 35|| antardhṛtāhimakarajvalanoditenduḥ svaḥsindhusaṅgasubhagā parameśvarasya | audanvatīva tanurastu gajāśvaratna- śrīlābhakṛtsumanasāmamṛtāya dṛgvaḥ || 36|| yatrāgnirīpsati kaṇaṃ na vivṛtya jihvāṃ naiti pratikṣapamapetavasustamarkaḥ | kṣīṇastamindurapi na śrayati śriye'stu śrīdhāma tatpuraripornayanatrayaṃ vaḥ || 37|| arkasya nodagayanaṃ śiśire'pi yatra śītatviṣo na bahule'pi kalāpalāpaḥ | kṣāmaṃ ca dhāma na vahatyapi vahnirahni tattrāyatāṃ puraripornayanatrayaṃ vaḥ || 38|| yāmāśrito'mbaramaṇī ramaṇīyadhāmā kāmāntakāvanalasā'nalasādvyadhādyā | yāpīndusambhavasudhāvasudhā dṛśastāḥ śarvasya vaḥ śivapuṣo vapuṣo bhavantu || 39|| puṣṇātu vaḥ prathamasaṅgamabhīrugaurī- visrambhaṇapraṇayabhaṅgabhayākulasya | tatkālakāryakaradarpakadehadāha- jātānutāpamuragābharaṇasya cetaḥ || 40|| jūṭe kapālaśakalāni kalānidhiśca haste sudhāmbu saralaṃ garalaṃ gale ca | śakrādibhiśca namanaṃ gamanaṃ gavā ca yasyāstu durgatiharaḥ sa haraḥ sadā vaḥ || 41|| yasya kṣitiḥ śirasi saumanasīva śeṣā śeṣāhiraṅgadapade sa cakāsti yasya | tasya prabhoramṛtanirjharanirviśeṣā- śeṣāṇi hantu duritāni sarasvatī vaḥ || 42|| śrīmānakalpata na kalpataruryadāptyai tṛṣṇā rasāyanarasāya na yaṃ sametya | labhyo na yo gahanayogahavaiḥ sa vo'gha- maprākṛto harakṛto haratu prasādaḥ || 43|| muktirhi nāma paramaḥ puruṣārtha eka- stāmantarāyamavayanti yadantarajñāḥ | kiṃ bhūyasā bhavatu saiva sudhāmayūkha- lekhāśikhābharaṇabhaktirabhaṅgurā vaḥ || 44|| sa yatra guhabarhiṇo bhavabhujaṅgajihvāñcanai- rgajāsyakarakarṣaṇaiḥ sa ca girīndrakanyāhariḥ | sa cārkasutasairibho ravituraṅgaheṣāravai- rmudaṃ dadhati dhāma taddiśatu śāmbhavaṃ dhāma vaḥ || 45|| yasmiñjātastribhuvanajayī bhagnakāmaḥ sa kāmo yasmiṃllebhe śalabhalaghutāṃ prāptakālaḥ sa kālaḥ | yasyaugho na prabhavati mahonihnave jāhnavīyaḥ śreyaḥ preyaḥ prathayatu sa vaḥ śāmbhavo dṛktribhāgaḥ || 46|| yaḥ krodhāgneḥ samidhamakaroddarpakaṃ darpakanda- cchedābhijñaṃ vyadhita jagatāṃ yaḥ kṛtāntaṃ kṛtāntam | netuṃ yaśca prabhavati matihrāsamastaṃ samastaṃ niṣpratyūhaṃ prathayatu pathi trāsade vaḥ sa devaḥ || 47|| pāyādvastrijagadguruḥ smaraharaḥ sopagrahāṇāṃ śiraḥ śyāmākāmukamatsareṇa caraṇau paṅktirgrahāṇāmiva | yasya prahvasurāsureśvaraśiromandāramālāgala- tkiñjalkotkarapiñjaronmukhanakhaśreṇīnibhenāśritā || 48|| arkendubhaumabudhavākpatikāvyamandā mandārakundakumudairyamudarcayanti | tasya prabhoraghamaloṣmaśamādamandā mandākinīva mudamarpayatu stutirvaḥ || 49|| bhasmoddhūlitamūrtirindudhavalajyotīrasorvīdhara- skandhāsaktatuṣāragauravṛṣabhārūḍho'stu bhadrāya vaḥ | devo dugdhamahābdhimadhyavikasatsatpuṇḍarīkopari- krīḍadbālamarālanirmalaruciḥ kātyāyanīkāmukaḥ || 50|| trātā bhītibhṛtāṃ patiścidacitāṃ kleśaṃ satāṃ śaṃsatāṃ hantā bhaktimatāṃ matāṃ svasamatāṃ kartā'pakartā'satām | devaḥ sevakabhuktimuktighaṭanābhūrbhūrbhuvaḥsvastrayī- nirmmāṇasthitisaṃhatiprakaṭitakrīḍo mṛḍaḥ pātu vaḥ || 51|| kṛṣṇena trijagatprasiddhavijayaprakhyātinā locanaṃ bhaktyā vāsavasūnunā kṛtavatā pādābjapūjāvidhau | yasmādāptasudarśanena nikhilaṃ viśvaṃ vidheyīkṛtaṃ kṛṣṇeneva sa dhūrjaṭirghaṭayatu śreyāṃsi bhūyāṃsi naḥ || 52|| śrīkaṇṭhasya sakṛttikārtabharaṇī mūrtiḥ sadārohiṇī jyeṣṭhā bhadrapadā punarvasuyutā citrā viśākhānvitā | diśyādakṣatahastamūlaghaṭitāṣāḍhā maghālaṅkṛtā śreyo vaiśravaṇāśritā bhagavato nakṣatrapālīva vaḥ || 53|| bhinddhi kṣmādharasandhibandhamudadherambhobharaṃ jṛmbhaya kṣunddhi kṣmāpaṭalaṃ dalatphaṇiphaṇāpīṭhīluṭhatsauṣṭhavam | piṇḍḍhi prauḍhacapeṭapāṭitaraṭattārākuṭumbaṃ nabhaḥ prārabdhoddhatasāndhyatāṇḍava iti śrībhairavaḥ pātu vaḥ || 54|| bhūtyai vo'stu viḍambitasmitarutaṃ mūrdhnodhṛtasvardhunī- nidhvānadhvanadānanairabhinaye bhūṣākapālaiḥ prabhoḥ | tvaṅgattumburunāradāhatanadadgambhīrabherīrava- vyāvalgadguhavāhabarhivihitakrīḍānusāraṃ vapuḥ || 55|| ādau pādatale kṛtasthitiratho(atha)prāptaḥ karālambanaṃ vāllabhyaṃ śubhadṛṅniveśanavaśotpannaṃ prapannastataḥ | ante yena śirodhiropaṇamahāmāhātmyamāpto vidhu- rbhūtyai sa kramavarddhamānamahimā svāmiprasādo'stu vaḥ || 56|| yasyaikasya suvarṇasambhṛtapadanyāsānavadyakrama- vyaktiḥ preṅkhati gauranargalagatisvācchandyahṛdyākṛtiḥ | prakhyātādbhutasargabandharacanāsaṃrabdhirojasvinaḥ kāvyasyodayabhūrasau bhavatu vaḥ prītyai purāṇaḥ kavi || 57|| rākendorapi sundarāṇi hṛdayagrāhīṇi bālāṅganā- mugdhālāpakathāmṛtādapi paraṃ hārīṇi hārādapi | apyuttālaśikhālabālavacasaḥ sampūrṇakarṇāmṛta- syandīni trijagadguroḥ stutikathāsūktāni puṣṇantu vaḥ || 58|| śāṇollīḍhanavendranīlamahasi śrīkaṇṭhakaṇṭhasthale saṃsaktā kanakacchavirgirisutādoḥkandalī pātu vaḥ | yāmālokya sanīranīradadalaśliṣyattaḍidvibhrama- bhrāntyā nojjhati caṇḍatāṇḍavanavollekhaṃ śikhī ṣāṇmukhaḥ || 59|| yatsargābharaṇāyamānavapuṣaḥ kecitkakupkāminī- karṇālaṅkaraṇāyamānayaśasaḥ svargāyamāṇaśriyaḥ | duṣkālānalasannasajjanasudhāvarṣāyamāṇoktayaḥ prekṣyante mahimā sa yasya kurutāṃ śārvaḥ stavaḥ śaṃ sa vaḥ || 60|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``āśīrvādākhyaṃ'' nāmakaṃ tṛtīyaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 4. maṅgalāṣṭakaṃ caturthaṃ stotram śrīkambukaustubhasudhāṃśuviṣāmṛtānāṃ saudaryasauhṛdasukhānubhavaikadhāma | yatsatyadharmakṛtaniṣpratighapratiṣṭhaṃ tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 1|| āpīḍabandhanavidhau śayane ca varṣma paryāptabhogavibhavaṃ bahumanyamānaḥ | yatra prahṛṣyatitarāmuragādhirāja- stanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 2|| ardhaṃ yadutpaladalairumayendugaura- mardhaṃ śriyārcitamalidyuti mālatībhiḥ | vicchittimetyanimiṣekṣaṇaśuktipeyāṃ tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 3|| keśāśritā nayanavahniśikhābhrasindhu- jhāṅkāragarbhavapuṣo jaladā vahanti | yatrādbhutaṃ sthirataḍidrasitaprasaṅgaṃ tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 4|| hīnārdhanābhinalinālayasaṅkaṭatva- sātaṅkasaṅkucitavṛttikadarthitāṅgaḥ | ardhīcikīrṣati tanuṃ druhiṇo'pi yatra tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 5|| dṛgvartinau ravitamīramaṇāvakhaṇḍa- mūrtī nijaṃ ca vapurardhamavetya vahniḥ | yatrādhikaṃ jvalati lāghavamāgatopi tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 6|| yasmin guṇī sahṛdayaḥ saphalaḥ samūlaḥ svātantryadhāmani karāt patitaḥ sa padmaḥ | kambuḥ sthitastu dhṛtatadviparītarīti- stanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 7|| pādāgranirgatamavāritameva vāri yatrādhirohati śirastridaśāpagāyāḥ | atyadbhutaṃ ca ruciraṃ ca niraṅkuśañca tanmaṅgalaṃ diśatu hāriharaṃ vapurvaḥ || 8|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrījagaddharaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``maṅgalāṣṭakaṃ'' nāma caturthaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 5. kavikāvyapraśaṃsākhyaṃ pañcamaṃ stotram āpannatāpaharaṇapravaṇā ghṛṇeva tvaṅgattaraṅgasubhagā gaganāpageva | pīyūṣasāraśiśirā śaśabhṛtkaleva vāṇī śivaikaśaraṇā jayatīśvarīva || 1|| yo mūrdhani srajamivodvahate dharitrī- muṣṇīṣatāṃ śrayati yasya sa bhogirājaḥ | yasyāmasau vasati vākpatiruktidevīṃ tāṃ ye vahanti hṛdi te kavayo jayanti || 2|| dhanyāḥ śucīni surabhīṇi guṇombhitāni vāgvīrudhaḥ svavadanopavanodgatāyāḥ | uccitya sūktikusumāni satāṃ viviktavarṇāni karṇapulineṣvavataṃsayanti || 3|| śrotrāṇyanargalagalanmadhubindugarbha- sandarbhasundarapadopacitairvacobhiḥ | dhanyāḥ satāṃ sukavayaḥ sukhayanti te'pi teṣāmakṛtrimacamatkṛtisādhuvādaiḥ || 4|| te kecidaskhalitabandhanavaprabandha- sandhānabandhuragiraḥ kavayo jayanti | yeṣāmacarvitarasāpi camatkaroti karṇe kṛtaiva bhaṇitirmadhurā sudheva || 5|| te'nantavāṅmayamahārṇavadṛṣṭapārāḥ sāṃyātrikā iva mahākavayo jayanti | yatsūktipelavalavaṅgalavairavaimi santaḥ sadaḥsu vadanānyadhivāsayanti || 6|| jihvāgraraṅgabhuvi satkaviturvilāsa- lāsyotsavavyasaninī svayamuktidevī | bhrūkāṇḍakuṇḍalakirīṭaśirodharāṇāṃ nṛttopadeśagurutāṃ kṛtināmupaiti || 7|| āvarjayanti maṭharāñjaṭharārthamātra- pātrīkṛtārthakaṇikā gaṇikāviṭādyāḥ | prauḍhān punarbhujagabhūṣaṇabhaktisikta- sūktāvalīviracanācaturāḥ kavīndrāḥ || 8|| dhanyaḥ sa ko'pi sukaviḥ kavikarmakṛtta- lokārti kārtikatuṣārakarānukāri | gāyanti yasya kṛtinastrijagatpavitraṃ citraṃ caritramiva bālamṛgāṅkamauleḥ || 9|| trailokyabhūṣaṇamaṇirguṇivargabandhu- rekaścakāsti savitā kavitā dvitīyaḥ | śaṃsanti yasya mahimātiśayaṃ śirobhiḥ pādagrahaṃ vidadhataḥ pṛthivībhṛto'pi || 10|| yasya sravantyamṛtameva mukhe tuṣāra- hārābhirāmarucirañcitavakrabhaṅgiḥ | sūktirdyusindhuriva mūrdhni harasya candra- lekheva vā vasati taṃ sukaviṃ namāmaḥ || 11|| yātā guṇairupacayaṃ vimalā prakṛtyā naisargikīṃ pariṇatiṃ prathamāṃ vahantī | buddhiḥ satāṃ śaśikalāmukuṭaprasādā- dvāṇī ca na kvacidapi pratighātameti || 12|| candrāvacūḍacaraṇasmaraṇaprasāda- sandarbhanirbharagabhīragirāṃ kavīnām | sūktirbibharti mukhapaṅkajaraṅganṛtya- dvāgdevatākanakanūpuranādalīlām || 13|| kāvyaṃ vibhāvya nijamardhanimīlitāni naisargikaṃ jahati cāpalamīkṣaṇāni | gṛhṇanti tanmasṛṇatāṃ sahajāṃ vihāya bhrūvallayastu kṛtināṃ kavipuṅgavānām || 14|| nīhārahāradhavalasya jayatyapūrvaḥ pākaḥ sa ko'pi sukṛtasya kṛtasya pūrvam | yaḥ samprati pratiphalatyamalāsu bāla- candrāvacūlanutisūktiṣu satkavīnām || 15|| sūkṣmārthadarśanavimarśavaśaprarūḍha- bhrūkāṇḍatāṇḍavaniveditacidvikāsam | āsvādya yatsumatayo mukhamudvahanti sūktāmṛtaṃ jayati tatkavikuñjarāṇām || 16|| śabdārthamātramapi ye na vidanti te'pi yāṃ mūrchanāmiva mṛgāḥ śravaṇaiḥ pibantaḥ | saṃruddhasarvakaraṇaprasarā bhavanti citrasthitā iva kavīndragiraṃ numastām || 17|| labhyaḥ sa kutra sujanaḥ svakṛtīḥ pradarśya bhrūkandalīyugalamākalayanti yasya | netrotpalopariparisphuraduttaraṅga- bhṛṅgāvalidvitayavibhramabhṛt kavīndrāḥ || 18|| sphāreṇa saurabhabhareṇa kimeṇanābhe- stadghānasāramapi sāramasārameva | sraksaumanasyapi na puṣyati saumanasyaṃ prasyandate yadi madhudravamuktidevī || 19|| saṃsāramāravapathaprathamānakheda- vicchedakovidamidaṃ kavikarmma jīyāt | vismāritaṃ yadamunā yamunāsanāthaṃ pāthaḥ prasiddhamapi vaibudhasaindhavaṃ naḥ || 20|| gāmbhīryaśālini śucāvamṛtaughaśīte nīte sadā sadanatāṃ madanāntakena | yasyaikapiṅgalagireriva mānase'nta- rarthāḥ sphuranti sa vinā sukṛtaiḥ kva labhyaḥ || 21|| yasya dyusindhulaharīśucayo na kasya dṛṣṭiprasādamavalokayato'rpayantyaḥ | gāvaḥ sudhārasamucaḥ prasaranti dikṣu viśvaikabhūṣaṇamasau jayati dvijendraḥ || 22|| saṃyogametya paramarthapariṣkṛtasya pādāntago'pi gurutāṃ laghureti yasya | taṃ śaṅkarastutiparaṃ pariśuddhavṛttaṃ suślokamāpya mudameti na kasya cetaḥ || 23|| iha hi mahimā māyāmohaprarohatirohita- trijagadagadaṅkāraḥ sārasvataḥ prathate satām | prabhavati jarāmṛtyuvyādhiprabandhanibandhana- vyasanajanitavyāpattāpaklamāpagamāya yaḥ || 24|| camatkārotkarṣaṃ kamapi kamanīyaṃ vimṛśatāṃ diśantī sā kācijjayati kavivācāṃ pariṇatiḥ | yadāsṛṣṭe (yadātuṣṭe)cetasyamṛtamiti niśreyasamiti priyaṃ dhāmetyuccaiḥ padamiti samudyanti matayaḥ || 25|| madhusyandī mandīkṛtavipadupādhirbhavamaru- bhramakleśāveśapraśamakamanīyo vijayate | akhaṇḍaśrīkhaṇḍadravanavasudhāsārasarasaḥ prasādo vāgdevyāḥ pravarakavikāvyāmṛtavapuḥ || 26|| ghanānandasyandodgata (spandodgata)vipulavāṣpārdranayanaṃ salīlabhrūvallīvalanavivaladbhālapulinam | udañcadromāñcastavakitakapolaṃ vidadhate sudhārdrā dhanyānāṃ vadanamanavadyāḥ kavigiraḥ || 27|| dhanyānāmamṛtaṃ dravanti hṛdaye karṇe valanmallikā- laṅkārastavakanti kaṇṭhapuline muktākalāpantyapi | śailāndolitadugdhasindhulaharībhaṅgābhirāmodgamā śyāmākāmukakhaṇḍamaṇḍanakathāsandarbhagarbhā giraḥ || 28|| dhanyānāṃ bhaṇiticchalena vadaneṣūdyanti hṛtkarṇikā- dhāmnaḥ sūktisudhāvabodhavidhutāpīḍasya caṇḍīpateḥ | kiṃ jūṭāhikirīṭaratnarucayaḥ kiṃ sragrajaḥsūcayaḥ kiṃ maulīndumarīcayaḥ kimamarasrotasvatīvīcayaḥ || 29|| sāndrānandakare dhṛtāmṛtakare nāstyeṣa rākākare na prauḍhaprasare nisargaśiśire svargāpagānirjhare | gāḍhapremabhare smarajvarahare noddāmarāmādhare yaḥ śambhormadhure stutivyatikare hlādaḥsudhāsodare || 30|| ojasvī madhuraḥ prasādaviśadaḥ saṃskāraśuddho'bhidhā- bhakti vyaktiviśiṣṭarītirucitairarthairdhṛtālaṅkṛtiḥ | vṛttasthaḥ paripākavānavirasaḥ sadvṛttiraprākṛtaḥ śasyaḥ kasya na satkavirbhuvi yathā tasyaiva sūktikramaḥ || 31|| prāptā kalpalateva cedbhagavatī vāgīśvarī kairapi prākpuṇyaiḥ svaparopakārakaraṇaprauḍhā punardurlabhā | ajñaistajjñajanopadeśavihitāvajñairdurāśāhatai- rastā durmadakardame phalati kiṃ pāpaṃ saśāpaṃ vinā || 32|| visrabdhaṃ vilasantyupaskṛtapadanyāsā vilāsālasā sāhaṅkāramakāraṇāribhirabhidhyātā'bhijātākṛtiḥ | kṣiptā dṛptanṛpāndhakūpakuhare dāśairivāśāgrahai- rgrastaiḥ sūktinibhena tārakaruṇaṃ gaurīdṛśī roditi || 33|| uṣṇaṃ niḥśvasiti kṣitiṃ vilikhati prastauti na preyasaḥ prītiṃ sūktibhirīśituḥ karatale dhatte kapolasthalam | vāgdevī hṛdayajvareṇa guruṇā krāntā hatāśairvṛthā nītāviṣkṛtakopaniṣkṛpanṛpastotratrapāpātratām || 34|| asthāne gamitā layaṃ hatadhiyāṃ vāgdevatā kalpate dhikkārāya parābhavāya mahate tāpāya pāpāya vā | sthāne tu vyayitā satāṃ prabhavati prakhyātaye bhūtaye ceto nirvṛtaye paropakṛtaye prānte śivāvāptaye || 35|| etāḥ pūrvakavipraṇītavividhagranthā'mṛtāsvādana- krīḍādurlalitaṃ haranti hṛdayaṃ vācaḥ kathaṃ dhīmatām | keṣāñcitpunarīśvarastutipadavyāhārahevākināṃ yāsyanti spṛhaṇīyatāṃ bhuvi bhavakleśaspṛśāṃ mādṛśām || 36|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``kavikāvyapraśaṃsākhyaṃ'' nāma pañcamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 6. harāṣṭakaṃ ṣaṣṭhaṃ stotram jayatyakhilakhecarapravaramauliratnaprabhā- prarohaparipīvarīkṛtanakhāṃśupādāmbujaḥ | viśālanayanatrayīracitadhāmadhāmatrayī- tiraskṛtajagatrayīpariṇatāndhakāro haraḥ || 1|| jayatyamaradīrghikāsalilasekasaṃvardhita- pracaṇḍanayanānalaglapitatīvratāpavyathaḥ | acintyacaritojjvalajvaladananyasādhāraṇa- prabhāvamahimāhitatribhuvanāpakāro haraḥ || 2|| jayatyacalakanyakālalitadorlatāliṅgita- sphuradgaralakālimākalitakāntakaṇaṭhasthalaḥ | taḍidvalayalaṅghitollasadamoghameghabhrama- pramattaguhabarhiṇopahṛtanṛttaharṣo haraḥ || 3|| jayatyaviralocchaladgaralavahniheticchaṭā- saṭālaphaṇabhīṣaṇakṣapaṇapāśamokṣakṣamaḥ | udārakaruṇārasaprasarasārasiktāśayaḥ prapannavipadarṇavottaraṇakaṇadhāro haraḥ || 4|| jayatyudadhiniḥsaradgaranigāralabdhā'bhaya- pramodabharanibharatridaśadaityavṛndastutaḥ | rasātalatalodgatajvaladalaṅghyaliṅgāllasa- nmahāmahimamohitadruhiṇavāsudevo haraḥ || 5|| jayatyatulavikramonmiṣadakharvagarvajjvara- jvalaccapalamanmathonmathanabhagnabhogaspṛhaḥ | daśāsyabhujamaṇaḍalītaralitaikapiṅgācala- trasadgirisutāhaṭhagrathitakaṇaṭhapīṭho haraḥ || 6|| jayatyakalitollasanmadabharoddharāndhāsura- pratiṣkaraṇasāntvanaprathitanigrahā'nugrahaḥ | jagattrayabhayaṅkaratripuraghoradāvāvalī- salīlakavalīkṛtipralayavārivāho haraḥ || 7|| jayatyaghavanāśaniḥ sumatimādhavīmādhavaḥ kṛpāmṛtapayonidhirbhavamahārṇavaikaplavaḥ | vipattṛṇasamīraṇaḥ praṇayicittacintāmaṇiḥ samastabhuvanodayapralayakelikāro haraḥ || 8|| || iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``harāṣṭakaṃ'' nāma ṣaṣṭhaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 7. sevābhinandanaṃ saptamaṃ stotram niśāntanidreva daśeva śaiśavī navīnavadhvāścakiteva dṛkchaṭā | surasravantīva katheva śāmbhavī kavīndravāṅnirvṛtimātanotu vaḥ || 1|| alaukikāhlādanibandhanaṃ manaḥ prasādanaṃ svānubhavaikasakṣikam | prakāśatāṃ vo hṛdi pārameśvaraṃ maho rahasyaṃ sukavergirāmiva || 2|| sa yasya cāpātsapadi cyuto'cyutaḥ śikhābhirugro viśikhaḥ śikhāvataḥ | purāṇyakārṣīdapurāṇi bhairavo bhayāni bhindyādabhavo bhavaḥ sa vaḥ || 3|| sa yasya pṛṣṭhe caraṇārpaṇaṃ vṛṣā vṛṣādhirohe kalayatyanugraham | trilokanāthaḥ sa girā sudhāvṛṣā vṛṣākapistāpamapākarotu vaḥ || 4|| sa yasya pādadvayamiddhaśāsanaḥ sadā samabhyarcati pākaśāsanaḥ | prabhuḥ prasādā'malayā dṛśā sa naḥ kriyādvipadbhaṅgamanaṅgaśāsanaḥ || 5|| camūrjayanbhījanakānakā na kāḥ sa yasya sūnuḥ klamahā mahāmahāḥ | jaṭāḥ sa bibhrattaruṇāruṇāruṇāḥ śriyaḥ kriyādvaḥ śubhayābhayā'bhayā || 6|| mayi dhruvaṃ dṛgbhavatā vatā'vatā kṛpāmṛtārdrā mahitā hitā''hitā | atastavāstapramayāmayā mayā kṛtā nutiḥ sātiśayāśayā''śayā || 7|| anabhravarṣapratimaṃ vimatsarā narā jarāruṅmaraṇārttibhīravaḥ | mudhā sudhāsūtivataṃsaśaṃsanaṃ vihāya dhāvanti rasāyanāya kim || 8|| maṇiḥ susūkṣmo'pi yatholbaṇaṃ viṣaṃ kṛśopi vahniḥ sumahadyathā tṛṇam | śiśurmṛgendropi yathā gajavrajaṃ tanuḥ pradīpo'pi yathā tamobharam || 9|| yathālpamapyauṣadhamunmadaṃ gadaṃ yathāmṛtaṃ stokamapi kṣayādbhayam | dhruvaṃ tathaivāṇurapi stavaḥ prabhoḥ kṣaṇādaghaṃ dīrghamapi vyapohati || 10|| amandasandarbhagabhīravibhramaḥ pragalbhavaidarbhapariśramaḥ kramaḥ | avaśyamāsādya guṇocitaṃ vibhuṃ bibhartti saubhāgyamabhaṅguraṃ giraḥ || 11|| yathā hi śīlena vinā kulāṅganā yathā vivekena vinā manīṣitā | sadarthabodhena vinā yathā śruti- rmahībhujaṅgena vinā yathā mahī || 12|| yathā vinā dyauraravindabandhunā vinā śaśāṅkena yathā niśīthinī | vidagdhavargeṇa vinā yathā sabhā vinā vibhūtirvinayena vā yathā || 13|| kṛpāvipākena vinā yathā mati- ryathā suputreṇa vinā gṛhasthitiḥ | tathaiva śocyā hariṇāṅkaśekhara- stavopayogena vinā sarasvatī || 14|| ramāpi devī mama no manoramā kṣamāpi māmabhyavapattumakṣamā | mama kṣamaikā bhagavatparānuti- rbhavārttibhaṅge sarasā sarasvatī || 15|| acetano yaḥ kila kusthitipriyaḥ pṛthagvidhopādhiśatakṣatāśayaḥ | niṣevyate pādatale sa yadgiri- ściraṃ munīndrairapi śuddhamānasaḥ || 16|| nisargataḥ satpathagarhitasthiti- rmalīmaso jihmagatiśca yaḥ phaṇī | sa kuṇḍalī yanmaṇimaulimaṇḍito mahābhujaṅgaḥ pṛthubhogabhāgapi || 17|| yadapyajasraṃ jaḍasaṅgamocitaḥ svabhāvatucchaḥ śaśabhṛt kalāmayaḥ | kalaṅkamuktaṃ vahate sudhāmayaṃ vidhūtadoṣodayamujjvalaṃ vapuḥ || 18|| sa eṣa gaurīśvarasaṃśrayātmanaḥ phalodgamaḥ kalpamahāmahīruhaḥ | amuṃ samāsādayituṃ hitāyati- ryateta ko nāma na cetano janaḥ || 19|| nidāghanirdagdhamahāmarubhrama- klamacchido mārgamahīruhādapi | kalindakanyāsalilaughasaṅgata- trimārgagāmbhobharasamplavādapi || 20|| sarasvatīsaubhagasārasambhṛta- prasannagambhīrapadakramādapi | kuraṅganābhīghanakuṅkumāṅkita- stanāṅganāliṅganavibhramādapi || 21|| amandamānandasudhārasadravaṃ sravannavandhyaṃ bhavaduḥkhite hṛdi | iyatyamuṣminbhuvanādhvani dhvani- rnamaḥ śivāyeti camatkaroti me || 22|| vicintayañjīvanameva jīvanaṃ samarthayan pārthivameva pārthivam | vibhāvayan vaibhavameva vai bhavaṃ kadā''śraye śaṅkarameva śaṅkaram || 23|| varaṃ bhavedapyavaraṃ kalevaraṃ paraṃ harārādhanasādhanaṃ hi yat | na tu kratudhvaṃsiniṣevaṇotsavaṃ vinighnatī muktirayuktipātinī || 24|| kva nīlakaṇṭhāyatanopasarpaṇa- sphuṭopakārau caraṇau mahāguṇau | kva cāñcanodvarttanacarcanādibhiḥ purāripūjārpaṇatarpaṇau karau || 25|| kva nāma nāmagrahaṇotsavaṃ vibho- rabhipravṛttā rasanā dine dine | kva cādriputrīpatipādapaṅkaja- sphuradrajorājivirājitaṃ śiraḥ || 26|| kva dṛkciraṃ pāritacandraśekhara- svarūpasaubhāgyavilokanaspṛhā | kva santatākarṇitadarpakadviṣa- dvicitracāritrapavitritā śrutiḥ || 27|| kva nirdhutā'nalpavikalpaviplava- trilocanadhyānanibandhanaṃ manaḥ | kva cā'pavargo'yamamārga eva yaḥ smarārisevāsukhasarvasampadām || 28|| idaṃ vidantaḥ sudhiyo bhiyojjhitāḥ samādhimādhicchidamāśritā api | prabhupraṇāmastuticintanārcana- sphuṭopayogaṃ bahu manvate vapuḥ || 29|| kimaṅgamaṅgalyamanaṅgabhaṅgada- prasādanādanyadadhanyamanyase | yadarthamarthakṣatikṛtsuduṣkaraprayāsa- sādhyeṣu makheṣu khidyase || 30|| imā himānīvimalā havirbhujāṃ prabhuprasādaprabhavā vibhūtayaḥ | karoṣi yattarpaṇamātrakāmyayā dayāspadaprāṇyupaghātapātakam || 31|| sakhe ! sakhedasya dhanārjanaṃ prati pratigrahādhyāpanayājanādibhiḥ | prayāti te vāyurivāyuriṅgitaṃ vihanti hanta kratave tavehitam || 32|| ataḥ svataḥ prārthitasampadāṃ padaṃ kadarthanāhīnamadīnamenasā | nidānamānandabhuvaḥ svayambhuvo bhajasva pādāmbujasevanotsavam || 33|| akleśapeśalamalaṅghyakṛtāntadūta- huṅkārabhaṅgabhiduraṃ duritendhanāgnim | ko nāma nāmayaharaṃ harapādapadma- sevāsukhaṃ sumatiranvahamādriyeta || 34|| romanthamantharakuraṅgaśatāśriteṣu bhāgīrathīśiśiraśīkaraśītaleṣu | rohanmahārhaphalakandalasundareṣu baddhāspadāstuhinabhūdharakandareṣu || 35|| dhanyāḥ samādhimavadhānadhanā dhanādi- sambandhabandhamavadhūya dhiyā'dhiyantaḥ | jyotiḥ paraṃ galadanalpavikalpajāla- mālokayanti bhagavantamanantamantaḥ || 36|| dhanyā bhajanti nṛpaveśmasu vetrivaktra- huṅkārakātaradhiyastaruṇendumaulim | vairāgyanirvṛtamanasvijanāvakīrṇa- svargāpagāpulinabālalatālayeṣu || 37|| santaḥ smaranti śaśikhaṇḍaśikhaṇḍasevā- hevākinaḥ surasaritpulinasthaleṣu | lakṣmīlavollasadamandamadā'valepa- bhūpālavāliśavilaṅghanaviplavānām || 38|| idaṃ madhumukhaṃ viṣaṃ harati jīvitaṃ tatkṣaṇā- dapathyamidamāśitaṃ vyathayate vipāke vapuḥ | idaṃ tṛṇagaṇāvṛtaṃ vilamadho vidhatte kṣaṇā- dyadatra malinolbaṇairdraviṇamarjitaṃ karmabhiḥ || 39|| ataḥ pratanuvaibhavodbhavadakhardagarvakṣamā- patipraṇayasambhavaṃ bhuvi viḍambanāḍambaram | vihāya suravāhinīpulinavāsahevākino bhajanti kṛtinastamīramaṇakhaṇḍacūḍāmaṇim || 40|| kiṃ bhūyobhiḥ paruṣaviṣayaiḥ śrīvikārairasāraiḥ kiṃ vā bhūyaḥ patanavirasaiḥ svargabhogābhilāṣaiḥ | manye nā'nyadbhavabhayavipatkātarāṇāṃ narāṇāṃ muktvā bhaktiṃ bhagavati bhave śasyamāśāsyamasti || 41|| dūrodañcaccaṭulalaharīhārihastavyudasta- vyāpattāpatridaśataṭinīmajjanonmajjaneṣu | śraddhābandhaṃ śaśadharaśiraḥpādarājīvasevā- hevākaikavyasanamanasastena tanvanti santaḥ || 42|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``sevābhinandanaṃ'' nāmakaṃ saptamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 8. śaraṇāśrayaṇaṃ aṣṭamaṃ stotram kalyāṇinaḥ suragireriva saṃśritasya lakṣmyā hareriva raveriva dīptibhājaḥ | padyasya śambhuviṣayasya jayanti pādā ye maṇḍayanti ca punanti ca viṣṭapāni || 1|| yāḥ paṅkilena kalilena viyojayanti nityojjvalena kuśalena ca yojayanti | tā dhūrjaṭeramaranirjhariṇītaraṅga- bhaṅgābhirāmagatayaḥ stutayo jayanti || 2|| saṃsāradāruṇadavānaladahyamāna- vākcittakāyakuśalīkaraṇauṣadhāni | śrībhuktimuktivaśakarmmaṇi kārmaṇāni śambhorjayanti nuticintanapūjanāni || 3|| doṣākarasya śirasi sthitimuttamāṅga- cchedaṃ vidheravirahaṃ naravāhanasya | bhasmīkṛtiṃ tripurapāśadharasmarāṇāṃ vaśyaṃ diśāñca daśakaṃ daśakandharasya || 4|| śauryānalasya paraśuvyajanena dīptiṃ rāmasya bāhuparighapratighaṃ maghonaḥ | haimaṃ maruttanṛpaterdivasāni sapta varṣaṃ sudarśanasamarpaṇamacyutasya || 5|| śvetasya kaṇṭhapulinātsamavartipāśa- protsāraṇaṃ nayananirharaṇaṃ bhagasya | dugdhābdhidānamupamanyumuneḥ kriyāsu dakṣasya vighnakaraṇaṃ makhadīkṣitasya || 6|| śūlādhirohaṇaparābhavamandhakasya pūṣṇo hanugrahamanugrahamarjunasya | nandīśvarasya ravijādabhayaṃ bhujaṅga- bhaṅgyābhimānamathanaṃ munimāninīnām || 7|| kiṃ vā'paraṃ druhiṇakṛṣṇaharatvametya sargasthitipraśamanāni jagattrayasya | krīḍanniva vyadhita yena niraṅkuśaṃ tat svātantryamapratihataṃ jayatīśvarasya || 8|| yasyā'tighoragaralādapi kaṇṭhapīṭhā- tsañjīvanauṣadhamudeti vaco natānām | yasya jvaladghanakṛśānuśikholbaṇāpi varṣatyamoghamamṛtadravameva dṛṣṭiḥ || 9|| daṃṣṭrākarālamapi ghoramaghoravakttraṃ yasya prapannabhayabhañjanabhaṅgimeti | yasyāṅgabhasmakaṇikāścaraṇāśriteṣu karpūradhūlipaṭalaśriyamāśrayanti || 10|| yasyāpi kṛṣṇabhujagā bhujagā bhajanta- mindīvarasraja iva pravinandayanti | kiṃ cāṅgasaṅgi marudīritameti yasya muṇḍaṃ namatsvamalamaṅgalakambuśobhām || 11|| yasyebhacarmaghanaśoṇitapaṅkalipta- maṅgeṣu maṅgaladugūla vilāsameti | yasyāpi tāpavidhureṣu kare kapāla- mālambate'mṛtakamaṇḍalukhaṇḍalīlām || 12|| yatpādapāṃsuparimarśaśuci śmaśānaṃ śrīśailanaimiṣamukhānyadharīkaroti | yatsaṃstavādavikalaṃ kuśalaṃ kapāla- pālī karoti kṛtināṃ kamalāvalīva || 13|| yaṃ devamastaśirasaṃ surabhartturaṅke laṅkeśavairikaravījitatālavṛntam | āsīnasuptasukhitaṃ śatarudriyādi- mantraiḥ svareṇa madhureṇa gṛṇāti vedhāḥ || 14|| helāvalīḍhabhuvanatritayena yena gīrṇāḥ purandaramukundaravīndavo'pi | yasya jvaladvipulabhālavilocanāgni- jvālāvalīśalabhatāmagamatsa kālaḥ || 15|| śvetaṃ vidhorudayahetumavetya pakṣaṃ kālaṃ ca yaḥ kṣayakaraṃ dṛśamāśritasya | śvetaṃ dayāviśadayāśu dṛśānugṛhya kālaṃ dṛśaiva nayati sma śamaṃ vipakṣam || 16|| cakrī mukhāgravilasajjvalanograjihvā- līḍhāmbaraḥ kṣitidharendradhanurdharasya | yasyāgamannidhanasādhanatāṃ purāṇāṃ vāṇīkṛtaśca raṇamūrdhni guṇīkṛtaśca || 17|| cakrāyudhaṃ viśikhatāmuḍucakravarti- cakrābhidhānasuhṛdau rathacakrabhāvam | nītvā'sṛjattridaśadhāmni rasātale ca yo harṣaśokamayamaśru purāṅganānām || 18|| ārūḍharīḍhamapi yena samarpitena prītiṃ ratiṃ ca hṛdi vismarati sma kāmaḥ | taṃ dṛṣṭipātamadhigamya bibharti yasya prītiṃ ratiṃ ca hṛdi ko na susiddhakāmaḥ || 19|| kṛṣṇopadarśitapathaḥ pṛthuloṣmabhīṣma- ślāghyaṃ dadhadvapurupāttavanāntavāsaḥ | vyādhākṛterapi dhanañjaya eva yasya dṛggocare kṛtapado mahasā didīpe || 20|| yuktaṃ sudhākarasudhākarakadyusindhu- toyādi yanmanasi tāpamapākaroti | yasyāṅgasaṅgi śavabhasmakapālamālā- hālāhalāhidahanādyapi hṛdyameva || 21|| mūrtiḥ kṛmeḥ śatapadī śravaṇaṃ praviṣṭā dṛṣṭā rujāmasuhṛtaṃ sṛjatī janānām | saurī tanurnanu sahasrapadī yadīya- netrasthitā harati mṛtyubhayaṃ śritānām || 22|| ākarṇya yaḥ kṛpaṇamārttavacaḥ kṛpābdhi- rādhūtamūrdhasuranirjhariṇīkaṇaughaiḥ | utsaṅgasaṅgatagirīndrasutākucāgra- saṃsaktamauktikamaṇīndviguṇīkaroti || 23|| udgāḍhabhaktividhuravyapanītatīvra- doṣāndhakāramatimātraśuciprakāśam | pīyūṣamudvamati yasya viviktavarṇaṃ karṇāntagāmi vacanaṃ ca vilocanaṃ ca || 24|| pātrībhavanti na yadaṅghrisarojareṇu- maitrīpavitraśirasaḥ sthirasatyavācaḥ | sāṭopakopavikaṭabhrukuṭicchaṭānā- muttālakālabhaṭavakravibhīṣikāṇām || 25|| sūktiṃ śuciṃ śravaṇayoramṛtaṃ sravantīṃ vakrāmabhaṅguraguṇāṃ mahatīṃ vahantaḥ | gāyanti yaṃ śritavataḥ pariśuddhavaṃśa- vidyā yaśāṃsi kavayaḥ parivādakāśca || 26|| yatsevakasya madanolbaṇabāṇapūga- krāntā'likāntavikasattilakojjvalaśrīḥ | sevyā bhavatyavasare kalakaṇṭhanāda- hṛdyā vadhūḥ kusumitopavanasthalī ca || 27|| yasminnakhinnamanaso vyasanāvasanna- santāpaśāntikṛtasammatayo vasanti | kātyāyanī ca karuṇā ca kalā ca cāndrī snigdhā ca dṛk surasaricca sarasvatī ca || 28|| santāpasampadapahārapaṭūni siddha- sindhorivendudhavalāni jalāni yasya | ākalpayanti madayanti pavitrayanti sañjīvayanti ca jaganti bhṛśaṃ yaśāṃsi || 29|| duṣkālasaṅkaṭakaṭāhakadarthitānāṃ tīvrābhimānamanasāṃ ghanasārabhāṃsi | bhindantyamandaharicandanabinduvṛnda- sandohadohadamaho caritāni yasya || 30|| phullāravindamakarandadhṛtaprasaṅga- bhṛṅgāṅganāgumagumāravagītigarbham | gāyanti yasya caritaṃ haritāmadhīśā dhīśālinaḥ kamalinīpulinasthalīṣu || 31|| vyaktojjvalālikacitaṃ mukhamāyatākṣaṃ vistīrṇakarṇikamanargalarūḍhanālam | yaṃ śaṃsato'dhivasati svayamuktidevī rājīvasadmakamalā vijigīṣayeva || 32|| āpannabāndhavamabandhyavacovilāsa- māsannamajjananamajjanasāntvaneṣu | devaṃ sudhākarakiśorakṛtāvataṃsaṃ taṃ saṃśritārttiharaṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ śrayāmi || 33|| devaṃ śrayāmi tamahaṃ mukuṭoragendra- sphūrjatphaṇāmaṇisahasramiṣeṇa yasya | bhālānalena surasindhujalokṣitena pronmuktamaṅkurasahasramivācakāsti || 34|| sānugrahottamagaṇāśritapādamūlaṃ mūrdhnā dhṛtābhrasaritaṃ satuṣāramūrtim | āsevitaṃ viṣadharaiḥ kaṭakeṣu tāpa- śāntyai girīśamatihṛdyaguhaṃ śrayāmi || 35|| yaḥ kṣīranīranidhimaṅghritale sudhāmbhaḥ- kumbhaṃ kare śirasi devanadīmadīnām | hartuṃ bibhartī bhavināmaṇukarmamāyā- mūlaṃ malatrayamayaṃ tamahaṃ śrayāmi || 36|| yasyāpagā sragiva saumanasī jaṭāsu yaḥ kaumudīṃ viracanāmiva mūrdhni dhatte | devīṃ varā'bhayakarāmapi yo bibharti prītaḥ śivāṃ dṛśamiva prabhumāśraye tam || 37|| gaurīṃ gajāsyajananīṃ himavatprasūtiṃ sadyaḥpavitritajagattritayāṃ ya ekaḥ | kātyāyanīṃ suradhuniṃ ca vibhurbibharti nirvāṇadaṃ śaraṇamemi tamindumaulim || 38|| kvāpyuddhṛtakratuvidhātṛmṛgottamāṅga- mutsaṅgasaṅgatamṛgaṃ kvacidoṣadhīśam | krūraṃ kvacinmṛgavadhaikaratiṃ kirātaṃ vātaṃ kvacinmṛgarathaṃ vibhumāśrayāmi || 39|| uddāmadoṣamapi dīrghaguṇaṃ bhujaṅga- bhogopagūḍhamapi rūḍhaśikhiprasaṅgam | kāpālikavratasametamapi dvijendra- cūḍāmaṇiṃ vibhumanaṅkuśamāśrayāmi || 40|| aṅge dhṛtāṅganamanaṅgakṛtāṅgabhaṅgaṃ viśvādhināthamatha khaṇḍakapālapāṇim | ugraṃ śivaṃ haramaghoramajaṃ ca sadyo- jātaṃ ca vismayanidhiṃ vibhumāśrayāmi || 41|| asminbhavādhvani mahāviṣame'sameṣu- roṣāditaskaratiraskaraṇaikavīram | bhīruḥ śrayāmi śaraṇaṃ kṣaṇadākuṭumba- lekhāśikhāmaṇimanuttamaśaktimīśam || 42|| kiṃ merumandaramukhairgiribhirgarīyān kailāsa eva jagadekagururgirīśaḥ | yasyā'bhayaṅkaramasaṅkaramastaśaṅka- maṅkaṃ suṭaṅkamakalaṅkamalaṅkaroti || 43|| ullaṅghya śāsanamananyajaśāsanasya ko'pyanyaśāsanamupāsitumeti niṣṭhām | hitvā vanaṃ hi navanāgaraparṇapūrṇa- muṣṭraḥ śrayatyavaṭameva sakaṇṭakaugham || 44|| anyārthamapyupahitā śitikaṇṭhasevā lokasya kalpalatikeva phalatyavaśyam | uddīpitā khalu parasya kṛte'pi yena tasyāpi darśayati dīpaśikhā'rthasārtham || 45|| yadyarcitaḥ (yadyarthitaḥ)sa bhagavānapi jīvikārthaṃ tatrāpi kilviṣavipākamapākaroti | yo'pi dyusindhupayasi plavate nidāgha- gharmacchide bhavati sopi hi dhautapāpaḥ || 46|| kurvanti bhaktimaparairapi ye niyuktā bhargasya te'pi bhavadurgatimutsṛjanti | stanyārthamapyupahitā pṛthukasya dhātrī pātrībhavatyakhilabhogasukhāsikānām || 47|| dambhādapi dhruvamanaṅgajitaḥ prayuktaḥ sevāvidhiḥ pramadasampada(pramadasammada)mādadhāti | veśyājanasya na sukhāya kimaṅgarāga- mālādugūladhavalaḥ kṛtako'pi veṣaḥ || 48|| tasmādupeta vibhumeva yathātathāpi muktirna cedbhavati kiṃ na galantyaghāni | yaḥ svecchayaiva nipatatyamṛtahṛde'nta- rmajjatyasau yadi na tatkimudetyasiktaḥ || 49|| kṣīrābdheravahelayā vitaraṇaṃ niryantraṇaṃ varṣaṇaṃ hemnaḥ kruddhakṛtāntamuktaphaṇabhṛtpāśagrahodvarhaṇam | yaccāpyutkaṭakālakūṭakavalīkārādikarmādbhutaṃ krīḍāmātrakameva yasya tadasau devaḥ kathaṃ varṇyate || 50|| svacchandasya yadṛcchayā gamayataḥ preṅkholatāṃ bhrūlatā- mājñā'nugrahalābhakatthanaghanaspardhānubandhoddhurāḥ | soṣmāṇaḥ kalayanti yasya kalahaṃ sevāsu devāsurā devasyā'sya maheśvarasya mahimaślāghāvidhau ke vayam || 51|| urvīnīrasamīraṇāruṇaśikhivyomātmasomātmakai- raṣṭābhirvibhavairbibharti bhuvanaṃ bhoktā ca bhogyaśca yaḥ | brūmastasya kimīśvarasya mahataḥ svairī svakaireva yaḥ sphārairbrahmapurandaraprabhṛtibhiḥ śārairiva krīḍati || 52|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``śaraṇāśrayaṇaṃ'' nāmā'ṣṭamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 9. kṛpaṇākrandanaṃ navamaṃ stotram dīpotkarairavirucāṃ paripūraṇeyaṃ nīhāravāribhiridaṃ bharaṇaṃ payodheḥ | asmādṛśāṃ mitadṛśāṃ niyatairvacobhiḥ prastūyate bhava tava (tava bhava)stavacāpalaṃ yat || 1|| atrā'parādhyati giro hara dhṛṣṭateya- meṣā nisargamukharā mukharāgiṇī yat | prauḍhiṃ parāmanupayatyapi vāñchati tvāṃ svāmin haṭhādiva paraṃ puruṣaṃ gṛhītum || 2|| yadvā bhavatyasulabho bhavadāśritasya śasyaḥ sa ko'pi mahimā na hi mādṛśo'pi | svacchandamandamapi yatra padaṃ tvadukṣā dhatte mahī bhavati hemamayī hi tatra || 3|| bhīṣmo viṣādapi viṣādapinaddhameta- ccetaścakāra savikāramakāraṇāriḥ | mohāmayastamayamastamayaṃ nayāmi svāmi~stava stavarasāyanasevanena || 4|| eṣaḥ stavastava navapramadopadeśa- mādeśayañjayati ko'pi gururgirīśa | sadyaḥ puraḥ sphurati me duratikrameṇa yatsaṅkamakramavaśena vacodhidevī || 5|| nāsya spṛhā'sti sarasāya rasāyanāya nā'yantritenduvadanāvadanā'mṛtāya | nirbandhameti tu bhavatsavidhe vidhehi nirbandhamandhakaripo tadidaṃ mano me || 6|| ābhāti śakranagarī na garīyasī me prītiṃ ca siñcati na kāñcana kāñcanādriḥ | jāne paraṃ hara śaraṇyamaraṇyameva yatra tvadaṅghrinalinārcananirvṛtiḥ syāt || 7|| puṣpeṣu dohadavaśādavaśā(śaṃ)bhṛśaṃ yā babhrāma vāmanayanābhujamañjarīṣu | sā sāmprataṃ dṛgalinī valinī(nīṃ)vyanakti tvadbhaktikalpalatikāphalabhogatṛṣṇam || 8|| kiṃ nirmitā mukuṭacandrakalāṃ nipīḍya kiṃ vā śiraḥśaraṇanirjhariṇījalena | kiṃ vā karasthakalaśāmṛtasamplavena bhaktistvayā praṇayināṃ bhavatāpaśāntyai || 9|| svāminvicitracaritasya tavā'padāna- gītāmṛteṣu dṛḍharūḍharatirmameyam | dūrīkṛtā'nyasaraṇirhariṇīva vāṇī satyaṃ padātpadamapi kṣamate na gantum || 10|| āśvāsanaṃ yamabhayākulatāmṛtānāṃ sañjīvanaṃ bhavadavavyathayā mṛtānām | ālambanaṃ sukavirājagirāmṛtānāṃ saṅkīrtanaṃ jayati te caritāmṛtānām || 11|| dānaṃ taraṅgataralaḥ kila dugdhasindhu- rmuktiḥ karālatarakālabhayātprasādaḥ | tyāgo'pi saptadivasāni suvarṇavṛṣṭiḥ kiṃ kiṃ na cārucaritaṃ bhavataḥ praśasyam || 12|| svāmin rajaḥparicitaṃ capalasvabhāvaṃ jātyā malīmasamidaṃ hṛdayaṃ madīyam | tvatpādapadmaviṣaye kṛtapakṣapātaṃ dhatte pramodabharanirbharabhṛṅgalakṣmīm || 13|| tvāṃ vāmadevamapi dakṣiṇamāśriteṣu sarvatra śaṅkara vasantamapi smarārim | apyantakopaśamahetumanantakopa- śāntyekakāraṇamacintyagatiṃ śrayāmi || 14|| kvāpi prasīdasi diśanviśadaṃ prakāśaṃ kvāpi prayacchasi ghanāvaraṇoparodham | kurmaḥ kimatra mahanīyamahāmahimno nāstyeva nāma niyatirnabhasaḥ prabhośca || 15|| cittaṃ natāpadupatāpahṛtipravṛttiṃ bhītā'bhayārpaṇapaṇapravaṇāṃ ca vāṇīm | lokopakāraparatantramidaṃ vapuśca kastvatparaḥ paramakāruṇiko bibharti || 16|| cittaṃ viṣādamagamanna paraṃ prasāda- maujjhadvicāramucitaṃ na bahiḥ pracāram | lebhe na kutra vivaraṃ pravaraṃ na bodha- metattvayaiva bhagavandhṛtaviprayogam || 17|| aśrāntamāntaramaśāntarajovikāraṃ sāraṅgaketumukuṭasphuṭamandhakāram | yuktaṃ yadandhayati yadbadhirīkaroti ko'tiprasaṅga iti tatra na tarkayāmi || 18|| līlāvilolalalanānayanāntavāsa- māsādya yaḥ kva na bhanakti manasvino'pi | so'yaṃ niviśya vimale hṛdaye madīye dhiṅmarmamarma na bhinatti kathaṃ manobhūḥ || 19|| svāminnasantamiva tatra vasantameva satvāmavaiti kimidaṃ yadi vā kimanyat | dagdho'pi yaṃ punaravāpya bibharti garvaṃ sarvaṅkaṣo vijayate sa tava prasādaḥ || 20|| śrīkhaṇḍacandananighṛṣṭakuraṅganābhi- karpūrakuṅkumakarambaśubhāṅgarāgam | udyannavīnakadalīdalasaukumāryaṃ bibhratyanaṅganaṭamaṅgalaraṅgamaṅgam || 21|| phullāravindavadanā vikasacchirīṣa- mālābhujābhinavanīlasarojanetrā | brahmāstramapratihataṃ vihitā hitāya puṣpāyudhasya kusumairiva mādhavena || 22|| nātheti jīvitahareti dayāpareti sapremakopamatikomalamālapantī | gāḍhānurāgavivṛtākhilagūḍhabhāva- māvarjayantyaviṣayairvacasāṃ vilāsaiḥ || 23|| kiṃvā paraṃ kupitanirghṛṇapañcabāṇa- bāṇaughabhinnahṛdayā parirabhya gāḍham | mugdhājanasya sahajāmavajitya lajjā- mautsukyasāndramadharāmṛtamarpayantī || 24|| ākṣiptasindhumathanotthamahāmṛtaugha- bhāvatkabhaktirasapāraṇanityatṛptam | pratyāhṛtendriyamavāptasamādhisaukhyaṃ na tvatparaṃ harati sā hariṇekṣaṇā'pi || 25|| helāvalanmalayamārutakampitānāṃ śīrṇaiḥ phalaiḥ svayamaraṇyamahīruhāṇām | vṛttirharasmaraṇaghūrṇitacetasaḥ kva dīnaṃ mukhaṃ kva ca puraḥ kumahīpatīnām || 26|| netratvamīśa tava mūrtivilokaneṣu vāktvaṃ bhavaccaritacarvaṇavibhrameṣu | tvatsaṅkathāśravaṇakarmaṇi karṇabhāva- micchanti gantumaparāṇi (itarāṇi)mamendriyāṇi || 27|| yacchatracāmarasitā kṛtināṃ vibhūtiḥ saḥ svalpa eva bhagavan bhavataḥ prasādaḥ | tvatsāmyameva (tatsāmyaṃ)tu satāmadhikastato'pi yadvalkalaṃ ca vasanaṃ vipinaṃ ca vāsaḥ || 28|| tvatpādapaṅkajarajaśchuritau ca pāṇī vāṇī bhavaccaritacarvaṇagarvitā ca | cittaṃ bhavadguṇagaṇasmaraṇavrataṃ ca bhūyo bhavanti mama cedahahāsmi dhanyaḥ || 29|| bhikṣāśano'pi bhagavaṃstvamakiñcano'pi jīrṇaśmaśānanilayo'pi digambaro'pi | kiṃ vā paraṃ varada ghasmara bhasmarūkṣa- gātro'pi sanmama vibhuḥ pratijanma bhūyāḥ || 30|| yāce na kiñcidaparaṃ vasatirgirīndre kailāsanāmni bhavadadhyuṣite mamāstu | kiṃ vā na tatra bhagavan mama ye sakhāya- ste'nye'pi santi gavayāḥ kapayaḥ kuraṅgāḥ || 31|| vācāmamī na viṣaye viṣayeṣu yeṣu tṛṣṇā'nvabhāvi viṣamā viṣamākirantī | tanmāṃ bhajojjvalavilolavilocanānta- vinyāsabhāsurasudhārasudhārasena || 32|| nānugrahastava vinā tvayi bhaktiyogaṃ nānugrahaṃ tava vinā tvayi bhaktiyogaḥ | bījaprarohavadasāvanayorna kasya bhūtyai parasparanimittanimittibhāvaḥ || 33|| śāntaṃ mano yadi yamairniyamaiḥ kimanyai- rvāṇī yadi priyahitā stuticāṭubhiḥ kim | kāruṇyamasti yadi kiṃ vratahomadānai- rbhaktirbhave yadi kimanyasukhābhilāṣaiḥ || 34|| bhuktaṃ vikalpakavalaiḥ suralokasaukhya- mālokitā vividhaśāstradṛśaiva muktiḥ | pītā sudhā śravaṇaśuktipuṭaiḥ samakṣa- māsvāditā punariyaṃ śivabhaktireva || 35|| dīrghāṇyaghānyadhiśucīva bhavantyahāni hānirbalasya śaradīva nadījalasya | duḥkhānyasatparibhavā iva duḥsahāni hā niḥsaho'smi kuru niḥśaraṇe'nukampām || 36|| nirbhartsito vipadi bandhurivā'bhimānī mā nīrasaṃ spṛśatu nāma mano vivekaḥ | vidyāṃ nidāgha iva gharmarucirhimānī- mānīyanāśamupatāpayate tu mohaḥ || 37|| tasmādupaiti na tanustarasā'vasāyaṃ sāyantanī pratipadindukaleva yāvat | tāvatkṛpāṃ kuru hato'smyahamaṃhasā'yaṃ sā yantritā mayi tavāstanayena yena || 38|| abhyeti mṛtyubhaṭasaṃhatirastakampā kampāmahe manasi yāṃ viniveśayantaḥ | ekā gatirgiriśa tatra tavānukampā kampātratāṃ nayati yā na śubhodayānām || 39|| yanniḥspṛhopyajanayastanayaṃ kumāraṃ māraṃ vidhāya śalabhaṃ nayanānalasya | tatte parārthamiti viśrutamākumāraṃ mā raṃhasā jahihi dehi tadehi vācam || 40|| sarvasvameva mama dattamahāprahārā hārāmalaṃ hara harantyarayo vivekam | rakṣākarī tava kṛpā'tra kṛtā'vahārā hā rājaśekharamaṇeḥ purato hato'ham || 41|| devālaye vasatimarthayate kapotaḥ sindhau vaṇigbhajati vṛttimaśaṅkapotaḥ | pṛṣṭhe śriyaṃ vahati nityamanekapo'ta- stvadbhaktimemi sarasīmiva bhekapotaḥ || 42|| labdhā dhṛtirdivi kadācana vāsavena sainyena sā parivṛtena na vāsavena | no vā balena bhuvi pītanavāsavena tvāṃ bhejuṣo bhavati yā'bhinavā savena || 43|| yā durlabhā divi maharṣabhayāna kasya kālasya yā nidhanadhāma bhayānakasya | vācā tayā kṛtanaterabhayānakasya tulyaśriyā'rpayasi śaṃ śubhayā na kasya || 44|| yaṃ vīkṣase kṣatamahākalikāla santaṃ kliṣṭaṃ kṛtīkṛtabṛhatkalikāla santam | indorivā'mṛtamayī kalikā lasantaṃ bālā'valokayati sotkalikālasaṃ tam || 45|| muktāvalīva rahitā śiva nāyakena muktā bhavadgaṇasabheva vināyakena | vāṇī tvayā parihṛtā'khilanāyakena sambhāvyate hṛdayasaṃvananāya kena || 46|| yasyocitaḥ prathitamāna samādhinānta- stenārtimudvahati mānasamādhināntaḥ | śuddhāṃ matiṃ spṛśati pāṃsulabhāvalepa- statrāpyupaiṣi na kṛpāṃ sulabhāvalepaḥ || 47|| kāmaṃ bhave'tra bahavaḥ subhagasvabhāvā bhāvā bhavantu mama tu dvitayaṃ spṛhāyai | śabdārthapākarucirā kavirājagīrvā gīrvāṇasindhudharabhaktirabhaṅgurā vā || 48|| jyotsnāchaṭābhiriva deva cakorakasya bhāsvatprabhābhiriva paṅkajakorakasya | daivībhiradbhiriva barhikiśorakasya prītirna te nutikathābhiraghora kasya || 49|| vṛttaṃ kva te sakalavāṅmanasātivṛttaṃ cetaḥ skhaladgati bhavāvaraṇātkva cetaḥ | vitrāsavantamiti māmanudatpavitrā bhaktiḥ stutistava kṛteyamataḥ subhaktiḥ || 50|| vandāmahe ca vividhaṃ vivadāmahe ca lajjāmahe ca kaluṣāṇi bhajāmahe ca | īhāmahe ca kuvacāṃsi sahāmahe ca dahyāmahe ca duritairjaṭharasya hetoḥ || 51|| labdhaṃ cireṇa sukṛtairacirasthiraṃ ca mānuṣyakaṃ punaridaṃ sulabhaṃ ca ceti | jānīma eva ca na ca svahitaṃ vidhātu- mīhāmahe vayamaho bata yadbhaviṣyāḥ || 52|| tasmādavaśyamavaśānaviśaṅkameva bhogopabhogarasikānasamāptakṛtyān | yāvanna dhīvara ivaitya timīnakasmā- nmṛtyuḥ kṣaṇādaśaraṇān harate haṭhena || 53|| tāvatprasīda kuru naḥ karuṇāmamanda- mākrandamindudhara marṣaya mā vihāsīḥ | brūhi tvameva bhagavan karuṇārṇavena tyaktāstvayā kamaparaṃ śaraṇaṃ vrajāmaḥ || 54|| jātasya mṛtyuriti cetsa na laṅghitaḥ kiṃ śvetena śītakaraśekharanandinā ca | tābhyāmasau yadi jito vipulaistapobhi- rasmākamalpatapasāṃ tvanivārya eva || 55|| tarhyarcanāntasamaye tava pādapīṭha- māliṅgya nirbharamabhaṅgurabhaktibhājaḥ | nidrānibhena vinimīlitalocanasya prāṇāḥ prayāntu mama nātha tava prasādāt || 56|| etena kiṃ niviḍabandhabhṛto bhujaṅgāḥ kiṃ vā na vakrimavilāsavikāsabhājaḥ | kintu kramādapacitāḥ padagumphahīnāḥ sūktāmṛtānukaraṇe kathamutsahante || 57|| tasmādbhayaṅkaramadaḥ phaṇikarṇapūra- hevākadurlalitamastanayaṃ vihāya | svāminnimāḥ śravaṇayoḥ praṇayopacāra- garbhā giraścaturamābharaṇīkuruṣva || 58|| svāminnabandhavatayā vata yā taveyaṃ vāṇī mayā nijagade jagadekabandhoḥ | tāmantakāntakara śaṅkara śaṃsato me karṇe kuruṣva karuṇāṃ karuṇāmburāśe || 59|| paśyantamandhamabhimāninamastamānaṃ vistīrṇakarṇamapi yā badhiraṃ karoti | sā''rttirna nartayati kiṃ kunṛṇāmiva śrīḥ tasmātkṣamasva bhagavannatilaṅghanāni || 60|| ucchṛṅkhalaṃ khalamalaṅghyabalaṃ jvalanta- mantaḥ kṛtāntamavikalpamanalpadarpam | āśaṅkya śaṅkaracaritrapavitracitra- sūktiṣvapi sthiraruṣaṃ pratibodhayāmaḥ || 61|| pratyagrakarkaśamaśalkamudarkapathyaṃ tathyaṃ satoṣamapadoṣamaroṣapoṣam | sandhitsavastava kṛtāntahitaṃ mitaṃ ca yadbrūmahe tadavadhāraya sāvadhānaḥ || 62|| anyatra darśaya niraṅkuśa huṅkṛtāni kīnāśa nāśaya durāśaya mā'bhimānam | nāthīkṛtendumukuṭānapi nāma manye nirbhartsayiṣyasi hataiva taveyamāśā || 63|| yeneśvareṇa mahatā vihitāgasaste kṛtvā'pi śāsanamakāri punaḥ prasādaḥ | tatsevakā vayamatastava vidviṣo'pi yadbrūmahe hitamado manuṣe ruṣeti || 64|| re durvinīta khala kāla purā purāre- ryāmāptavānasi nijāvinayapraśāstim | śrutvaiva tāṃ dhṛtimatāmapi kampameti cetaḥ kathaṃ punarupakramase tadeva || 65|| pāṇau nidhehi pavanāśanapāśamāśu nāstīha te puruṣapāśa ruṣo'vakāśaḥ | niḥsaṅkareṣu śaraṇīkṛtaśaṅkareṣu re kāla kātarabhayaṅkara kiṃ karoṣi || 66|| vyāpāraya svapuruṣaṃ puruṣaṃ pareṣu mā roṣamaṅkuraya śaṅkarakiṅkarāṇām | kiṃ vismṛtaṃ viṣadharāyudha nirnirodha- krodhaprabodhapaṭahaṃ harahuṅkṛtaṃ te (tat)|| 67|| kīnāśa bāliśa niraṅkuśa nirvimarśa nistriṃśa niṣkaruṇa niḥśaraṇeṣu cettvam | niṣkāraṇaṃ niranurodha karoṣi roṣaṃ tatkiṃ cikīrṣasi maheśvarasaṃśriteṣu || 68|| kurvan virodhamanirodhamabāndhaveṣu dhatse mudhā yama samuddhatakandharatvam | tīvrā'parādhavidhureṣvapi sādhavo hi bādhāṃ vidhātumadhameṣvapi na kṣamante || 69|| yatprāṇiṣu prabhavasi prasabhaṃ prahartuṃ prāpya prabhoḥ pramathanāthapituḥ prasādam | tatprākkṛtasya duritasya duruttarasya teṣāṃ phalaṃ tava kimantaka pauruṣaṃ tat || 70|| tattathyameva kimakāraṇakaṇṭakaṃ tvāṃ yaddharmarāja iti kāla janāḥ stuvanti | lokā na kiṃ jagadamaṅgalamūlakoṣaṃ śaṃsanti maṅgalavihaṅgama ityulūkam || 71|| tvāṃ jīviteśa iti yatstuvate rudatyaḥ kāpālikāḥ śavadaho guravo dvijāśca | tadyuktamantaka yataḥ paramaḥ suhṛttvaṃ teṣāmakāraṇaripustvasuhṛtpareṣām || 72|| kliśyantyavaśyamapamārjanabhūtayāga- niryāṇakarmacarameṣṭiśivakriyādyaiḥ | ye daiśikāḥ paramakāruṇikāḥ parārthe tvāṃ śrāddhadeva iti te ravija stuvanti || 73|| deśaṃ na yattyajati santamasantamantaṃ dhvāntaṃ nayaṃstava pitā samavartyato'rkaḥ | tvaṃ satsvasatsvapi samaṃ praharasyato'pi sadyaḥ stuvanti samavarttinamantaka tvām || 74|| kopaṃ vidhāya tava yena kṛtaḥ prasāda- statsevakeṣvapi cikīrṣasi yatprasādam | kiṃ tatra vartayasi māṃ samavartyato'pi tvaṃ stūyase viṣamavartyapi marmavidbhiḥ || 75|| bhālasthalāni kalayasyamalendumauli- pādāravindamakarandasitāni yeṣām | tvaṃ mānavānasi vimānaya mā nayajña tanmānavānavasi raudra yadi svamaudram || 76|| durvṛttadarpaśamanācchamano'si yattvaṃ yadvā yamo'syadhamasaṃyamanāttadanyat | manye madaṃ śamayituṃ prabhavastavaiva tvāmeva vā yamayituṃ bhavabhaktibhājaḥ || 77|| udvṛttamantaka nṛśaṃsa bhṛśaṃ sagarva śarvastavavyavasiteṣvapi ceṣṭase yat | tadbhāvi bhāvibhavabhairavabhairavogra- bhālānalodbhavaparābhavakṛtpunaste || 78|| kiṃ vā'nyadarkaja viśaṅka viśaṅkaṭāsya hāsyaṃ cikīrṣasi yadīśvarasaṃśrayāṇām | tanmā kṛthā na hi tavāśritavatsalo'sau sānugrahopyanucitaṃ kṣamate maheśaḥ || 79|| bhālasthalīva tilakena vadhūkaṭākṣa- vikṣobhitena tilakena vanāvalīva | vijñaptireṇatilakena vibhāvarīva śobhāṃ vasantatilakena bibhartti śambhoḥ || 80|| vāsaḥ kṣīṇadaśaṃ vayaśca karaṇagrāmaṃ manaścā'kṣamaṃ niḥsāreṣu durīśvareṣvapaciterudvegamaṅgeṣvapi | vyarthaṃ veśma nṛjanma cākhilamidaṃ kalyāṇaśūnyaṃ vapuḥ koṣaṃ codvahataḥ kuruṣva karuṇāṃ citte giraṃ ca śrutau || 81|| ajñastāvadahaṃ na mandadhiṣaṇaḥ kartuṃ manohāriṇī- ścāṭūktīḥ prabhavāmi yāmi bhavato yābhiḥ kṛpāpātratām | ārtenā'śaraṇena kiṃ tu kṛpaṇenākranditaṃ karṇayoḥ kṛtvā satvaramehi dehi caraṇaṃ mūrdhanyadhanyasya me || 82|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``kṛpaṇākrandanaṃ'' nāma navamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 10. karuṇākrandanaṃ daśamaṃ stotram jayati cittacakorakacandrikā sukṛtināṃ vadanābjaravicchaviḥ | śravaṇabarhiṇavarṣaṇavartanī hariṇaketukalāmukuṭastutiḥ || 1|| jayati bhaktilatānavamādhavaḥ sukṛtapādapapakvaphalodbhavaḥ | vipadupadravaviklavabāndhavaḥ sukavisūktivadhūvadanāsavaḥ || 2|| bhavamahārṇavanistaraṇaplavaḥ pravarasūrimayūraghanāravaḥ | hṛdayadāhahṛtāvamṛtadravaḥ kumudinīramaṇābharaṇastavaḥ || 3|| madhuramindumukhīvadanādapi klamaharaṃ surasindhujalādapi | tribhuvanādhipatistutipāvanaṃ jayati satkavisūktirasāyanam || 4|| navanavabhramarasvanaśobhinī bhavamarubhramagharmaśamakṣamā | hṛdayanandanacandanakandalī jayati śaṅkarabhaktirabhaṅgurā || 5|| atha kathañcana rūḍhamapi kṣaṇaṃ manasi vīkṣya vivekanavāṅkuram | bahuvidhavyasanaughavighaṭṭitaṃ sapadi vijñapayāmi jagadgurum || 6|| api jagadviditaḥ karuṇāparaḥ parahitā''hitamūrttiparigrahaḥ | kimiti haṃsi na haṃsa hṛdambuje kṛtapado vipadaḥ śaraṇārthinām || 7|| yadi bhavān vidadhīta hṛdi sthitiṃ vyasanasampadasau prasaretkatham | yadi na sā prasaretprasajetkathaṃ budhajano'pyasamañjasakarmmasu || 8|| iha bṛhadbhirudagraparigraha- grahagṛhītamatirvyasanodgamaiḥ | yadi na kātaratāṃ paratantratā- maphalatāṃ khalatāṃ ca bhajejjanaḥ || 9|| yadi bhajeta na sajjanasaṅgama- vyasanasarpadanalpakṛpāspadam | hṛdayamindumayūkhasukhāhati- vyatikaradrutacandramaṇiśriyam || 10|| abhilaṣeyuranargaladurgati- prasaradīrghanidāghanipīḍitāḥ | yadi ghanāgamavanna dhanāgamaṃ praṇayinastṛṣitā hariṇā iva || 11|| yadi na pīnaghanastanabhaṅgura- trivalibhaṅgitaraṅgitamadhyamāḥ | iha hareyurapāṅgavilokitairdhṛta- ratipramadāḥ pramadā manaḥ || 12|| balavadindriyataskarasaṅkule viṣayabhīmabhujaṅgamabhīṣaṇe | duritadīrghadavānaladuḥsahe bahalamohatamohatasaṃvidi || 13|| kṛtadhiyo'pi bhavādhvani dhāvataḥ prabalakarmarayāpahṛtātmanaḥ | avasare prahareyuramī na ce- nmadana mānamukhāḥ paripanthinaḥ || 14|| upacito'bhinavāmradalāvalī kavalanākulakokilakūjitaiḥ | yadi na tarjayituṃ prabhavenmadhau madanadigvijayodyamaḍiṇḍimaḥ || 15|| yadi madhau madhupānamadonmada bhramaragāyanaguñjitagītayaḥ | sukhalavānubhavāya kṛtaspṛhaṃ hara hareyurimaṃ na manomṛgam || 16|| abhinavastavakastanasannatāḥ pavananartitapallavapāṇayaḥ | yadi na bandhanibandhanamṛdhnuyu- rmadhupaguñjitamañjugiro latāḥ || 17|| yadi śucau manasīva na mānināṃ ghanamanehasi tāpamupāvahet | sarajaso haritastaruṇaiḥ karai- raviralaṃ pariripsuraharpatiḥ || 18|| pṛthulasajjaghanorupayodharā gurumaruccapalākulitāmbarāḥ | yadi bhaveyurimā na ghanāgame mṛgadṛśaśca diśaśca dhṛticchidaḥ || 19|| surabhigandhisahāsamukhāmbujā dhṛtamanoharahaṃsakavibhramāḥ | yadi na majjanadhāma natabhruvaḥ śaradi saṃsmarayeyuragāpagāḥ || 20|| yadi na dīrghatamāḥ samavāpnuyuḥ sahasi durviṣaholbaṇavāyavaḥ | dhṛtaghanoṣmabṛhattaruṇīstana- smaraṇakāraṇatāmapi rātrayaḥ || 21|| yadi bhavenna ghanāvaraṇodgama- glapitadhāmani ghamanidhau bahiḥ | tapasi cetasi ca vyasanākule tapasi rūḍharaso'pyalaso janaḥ || 22|| tadakhilāpadupoddharaṇakṣamaṃ samadhigamya durāpamidaṃ punaḥ | pavanavellitabālamṛṇālinī- dalacalajjalabindunibhaṃ vapuḥ || 23|| bhava bhavatpadapaṅkajapūjana- vyasanasaumanasīmapahāya kaḥ | iha saheta vibhūtilavonmiṣa- nmadakadaryavikārakadarthanām || 24|| idamudañcati meghamayaṃ mahat pihitabhāsvadamandamahastamaḥ | ghanabalo'pi sa kāla upasthita- stadiha haṃsa padaṃ kuru mānase || 25|| iti yadantarananta tirodadhan mudamudañcati mohamahātamaḥ | tava ravīnduhutāśanacakṣuṣo hṛdi nivedayatīdamasannidhim || 26|| na hi maheśa manastvadadhiṣṭhitaṃ bhramayituṃ prabhavanti bhavormayaḥ | na hi vanaṃ hariṇādhiparakṣitaṃ kṣapayituṃ kapayaḥ kvacana kṣamāḥ || 27|| varamaraṇyasaritpulinasthalī- tarutale phalamūlajalāśinaḥ | sthitiranargalavalkalavāsaso na śivabhaktimṛte tridaśendratā || bhavati paśyati naśyati durgatiḥ sphurati śaktirupaiti dhṛtiṃ matiḥ | stutikṛti pratipattimati śrutismṛti- bhṛti sthitimeti ca nirvṛtiḥ || 28|| kati na budbudavadbhavavāridhā- viha lasanti galanti ca jantavaḥ | samajani spṛhaṇīyajaniḥ puna- rjagati kaścana yaḥ śivasevakaḥ || 29|| sapadi pīṭhaviloṭhitamūrtibhi- rbhagavataḥ śucibhirdhṛtabhaktibhiḥ | caraṇareṇukaṇairiva mādṛśai- rdiviṣadāmapi mūrdhni padaṃ kṛtam || 30|| nipatatāṃ viṣame vipadambudhau yadavalambanamastaviḍambanam | jagadamaṅgalabhaṅgavidhāyi ta- jjayati ratnamaho śivasevanam || 31|| jayati janmajarāmaraṇavyathā- śamasamarthamanartha nivarhaṇam | sakalamaṅgaladhāma sudhāmayaṃ bhagavadarcananāma mahauṣadham || 32|| idamasādhitameva rasāyanaṃ nirupabhogamidaṃ sukhamakṣayam | amṛtametadanambudhimanthanaṃ yadavinaśvaramīśvarasevanam || 33|| kimaphalairaparairbhavaśambaraiḥ karituraṅgarathāmbaraḍambaraiḥ | bhagavadaṅghrisaroruhasevana- vyasanamastu mamānidhanaṃ dhanam || 34|| vahatu sā ramaṇī ramaṇīyatā- mamṛtamastvamṛtaṃ madhu vā madhu | bhavatu nirvṛtidhama tu yāminī- ramaṇamaṇḍanasevanameva naḥ || 35|| ahamaharniśamekamanā manā- guparamanmadamanmathamatsaraḥ | bhagavatīravagatya duratyayāḥ śaradharābharaṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ śraye || 36|| idamaha karuṇāmṛtasāgaraṃ śaśikiśoraśiromaṇimarthaye | vrajatu janmani janmani me vapu- rbhavadupāsanasādhanatāmiti || 37|| kamapi nāma nikāmamanoharaṃ vahati ṭaṅkamanaṅkuśameva yat | tadakalaṅkamalaṅkaraṇaṃ mukhe bhavatu me śivanāma nirāmayam || 38|| hṛdaya bhāvaya bhāvamanāvilaṃ niravadhāna badhāna dṛḍhāṃ dhṛtim | tvamasamartha samarthayase sukhaṃ kimavināśi vinā śivasevanam || 39|| bhavarasaṃ prati samprati tṛṣṇayā tyajasi mānasa mānasamunnatim | madanaśāsanaśāsanataḥ paraṃ kamanapāyamupāyamudīkṣase || 40|| upavane pavaneritamādhavī- dhavalite valite tarupaṅktibhiḥ | amalakomalakoṣaniṣaṇṇaṣaṭ- caraṇapāraṇapāvanapaṅkaje || 41|| samadane madanena vaśīkṛtā varavadhūravadhūya bhaja prabhum | aśaraṇoddharaṇoddhatadhīḥ śucā- muparamaṃ paramaṃ sa karoti te || 42|| jahihi mohamupehi nijāṃ sthitiṃ tyaja śucaṃ bhaja mānaparigraham | aharaharharapādasaroruha- smṛtirasāyanapānaparaṃ bhava || 43|| tadasamañjasamaṅga yadaṅganā- nayanacāpalaśāpamupeyatām | nayasi nityabahirmukha śaṅkara- smaraṇasaumanasīmapi heyatām || 44|| yadi samarthayase duratikramaṃ kupitakālabhaṭabhrukuṭībhayam | tadacikitsyabhavāmayabheṣajaṃ bhaja bhujaṅgamabhūṣaṇatoṣaṇam || 45|| yadi cikīrṣasi sauhṛdamātmanaḥ parijihīrṣasi yadyaghabandhanam | yadi titīrṣasi saṃsṛtisāgaraṃ śrayamayaskaramīśvarasevanam || 46|| yadi varāka sukarmavipākataḥ karatale patitastava śevadhiḥ | tamakhilāpadapākaraṇakṣamaṃ nayasi mūḍha nirarthakatāṃ katham || 47|| amalaśīlakulaśrutaviśrutaṃ sadasadarthavicāraviśāradam | purajidarcanasaukhyaparāṅmukhaṃ nayasi mānasa mānuṣajanma yat || 48|| bhramadamantharamantharayāhati- dhvanadamudrasamudrasamānayā | śamitaśāpadaśāpadamehi me hara girā vitarāvitathaṃ varam || 49|| anugṛhāṇa gṛhāṇa ghṛṇārṇava praṇayinaḥ praṇayānuguṇaṃ vacaḥ | upakuruṣva kuruṣva dṛḍhaṃ manā- gaśaraṇoddharaṇapravaṇaṃ manaḥ || 50|| pṛthuśirastridaśāpagayā śritaṃ karuṇayā hṛdayaṃ śivayā vapuḥ | kathamatipramite bhagavan dhṛtiḥ śravaṇarandhrapade'pi na me giraḥ || 51|| tvadanurāgabhareṇa kadarthitā tvadanurañjanakarmaṇi cākṣamā | iti matirmama cāṭuparāṅmukhī hara karoti nijārtinivedanam || 52|| priyatamo'si matermama sā puna- rna guṇavatyapi te hṛdayaṅgamā | iti maheśa bhavadvirahāturā bhajati kāmapi kāmakadarthanām || 53|| bhava bhavatparirambhasukho'stu mā tvadupabhogavidhau tu kathaiva kā | tava tu darśanamātrakakāṅkṣiṇīṃ mama matiṃ kathamitthamupekṣase || 54|| kuṭilatāṃ na jagāma nikāmato na sahajaṃ malinatvamupeyuṣī | vahasi kiṃ ghanarāgakadarthitāṃ mama matiṃ prati karkaśamāśayam || 55|| atha gatā pariṇāmadaśāmiti tyajasi cenmama mugdhatamāṃ matim | kimaparaṃ ghanamohavimūrchitā prathayatāṃ tava nirdayatāmiyam || 56|| idamanaṅgajanaṅgamasaṅgama- bhramadamandamalaṃ capalaṃ manaḥ | amṛtakumbhakara dyutaraṅgiṇī- dhara sudhākaraśekhara śodhaya || 57|| bhava marubhramakhedakadarthitaṃ suviṣamaistṛṣitaṃ viṣayoṣmabhiḥ | madayate hṛdayaṃ mama nirbharaṃ bhava bhavaccaraṇasmaraṇāmṛtam || 58|| viṣayapannagapāśavaśīkṛtaṃ bhavamahārṇavamagnamanīśvaram | bahalamohamahopalapīḍitaṃ hara samuddhara māṃ śaraṇāgatam || 59|| yamabhaṭairhviyamāṇamayantraṇai- raśaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ caraṇau śritam | ghanaghṛṇāmṛtanirbharayā dṛśā madanamardana māmavalokaya || 60|| abhayaghoṣamiṣonmiṣitā'mṛta- dravamabandhyadhṛtasmitacandrakam | vadanacandramasaṃ tava paśyato mama kadā nu tamaḥ śamameṣyati || 61|| prabalatāpakadarthitavigrahaṃ dvijapatiṃ paripālayituṃ śiśum | vahasi kiṃ na vibho hṛdaye dayāṃ śirasi nirjaranirjhariṇīmiva || 62|| praṇatatāpavipatkṣapaṇakṣamāṃ dalitasantatasantamasasthitim | hṛdi nidhehi dayāmamṛtasrutaṃ hariṇaketukalāmiva mūrdhani || 63|| abhimatādhikasiddhividhāyinīṃ bhavadavacchidamavyabhicāriṇīm | vaha vibho hṛdaye dayitāṃ dayāṃ vapuṣi bhūdhararājasutāmiva || 64|| cintāmaṇiḥ sphaṭikajātiracetano'pi kalpadrumaḥ kaṭhinakāṣṭhavinirmito'pi | tiryagdaśāmapi gatā kila kāmadhenu- rbhāgyairabhīṣṭaphaladā kṛtināṃ bhavanti || 65|| tvaṃ tu prabho tribhuvanaikamaheśvaro'pi paryāptaśaktirapi pūrṇakṛpārṇavo'pi | ākrandato'pi karuṇaṃ vidhivañcitasya tyaktādarosi mama darśanamātrake'pi || 66|| ciraṃ dvāropānte sthitamavasarodvīkṣaṇadhiyā tiraskāraḥ soḍhaḥ kupitamukharadvāḥsthavihitaḥ | mukhaṃ dīnaṃ kṛtvā vibhavalavagarvāndhitadṛśāṃ kadīśānāmagre ka iva na visoḍhaḥ paribhavaḥ || 67|| parimlāno mānastanurapi tanustāmyatitamāṃ mano mohāvarte bhramati dhṛtirastaṃ vrajati ca | kathāpi kleśānāmavatarati nocchedapadavīṃ davīyasyāmasyāṃ bhavabhuvi mudhā dhāvati matiḥ || 68|| tadevaṃ durvāravyasanaśatasampātaviṣamaṃ viśanneṣa svāminnahaha sumahanmohagahanam | avindannāśvāsakṣamamaparamāpannasuhṛdaṃ jano'vajñāpātraṃ bhavati karuṇābdherna bhavataḥ || 69|| kadaryāṇāmagre taralanalinīpallavatala- pralīnaprāleyapracalakamalāmūḍhamanasām | adabhrabhrūbhaṅgaprabhavamavamānaṃ hatadhiyaḥ sahante hanteha draviṇakaṇatṛṣṇāndhitadṛśaḥ || 70|| ahaṃ tu pratyagraprabhucaraṇarājīvarajasā pavitraṃ mūrdhānaṃ dadhadadhikabhaktigrahagurum | bhrukuṃsatvaṃ bibhratpramadabharasandarbharabhasā- dbhajeyaṃ bhūteśabhrukuṭighaṭanābhājanabhuvam || 71|| surasrotaḥsvatyāstaṭaviṭapipuṣpaughasurabhau girigrāvagrāmaskhalanamukharasrotasi jale | śramakṣāmairaṅgairagaṇitabhavakleśavipadāṃ kadā syānnastṛptirharacaraṇasevāsukharasaiḥ || 72|| amandānandānāṃ daladalaghusantāpavipadāṃ padāmbhojadvandvaṃ śirasi dadhatāminduśirasaḥ | kadā naḥ kālindīsalilaśabalairambarasari- ttaraṅgairaṅgārībhavati bhavabandhendhanacayaḥ || 73|| sāndrānandastimitakaraṇaḥ puṇyanaipuṇyabhāgī bhāgīrathyāstaṭaviṭapinaḥ kvāpi mūle nilīnaḥ | sarvākāraṃ giripatisutākāntamekaṃ prapannaḥ svātmārāmaḥ śamasukhasudhāsvādamabhyeti dhanyaḥ || 74|| abhijanaguṇakhyātiprajñābhimānabharoddhurāṃ ka iva sadasi prahvīkarttuṃ kṣameta (saheta)śirodharām | vidadhati muhurhelākhelaṃ bhavatyavadhīraṇaṃ bhramayitumamī yuktā na syuryadīndriyavairiṇaḥ || 75|| mānaḥ kasya na vallabhaḥ khalamukhaprekṣitvaduḥsthā sthitiḥ kasya prītikarī trapābharanataṃ kasmai śiro rocate | kintu svāmini sā'valepahṛdaye dāsīkṛtāḥ śatrubhiḥ kṣudrānadyataneśvarāndhanamadakṣīvānniṣevāmahe || 76|| stabdhā dvāri yadāsmahe kṣitibhujāṃ nirbhartsitā vetribhi- ryadgarvāndhanarendravallabhadurudgārairvidahyāmahe | yanmithyāstutipātakairbhagavatīṃ vācaṃ tiraskurmahe tatsarvaṃ tava vakravaktravalanāmātrasya visphūrjitam || 77|| dṛṣṭvā pāṭalagaṇḍalekhamaruṇodvāṣpekṣaṇaṃ prasphurad- bimboṣṭhaṃ prathamāparādhakupitaṃ vaktraṃ kuraṅgīdṛśaḥ | yatsaprema savismayaṃ savinayaṃ sāpatrapaṃ saspṛhaṃ satrāsaṃ ca mano'bhavattadadhunā śrāntaṃ ca śāntaṃ ca naḥ || 78|| yatkharvīkriyate sukhaṃ viṣayajaṃ tvadbhāvanājanmanā hlādena kṣaṇikaṃ sthireṇa mahatā svalpaṃ kimatrādbhutam | taccitraṃ bhavaduḥkhajaṃ bhavadanudhyānapramodāśruṇā vāṣpāmbu dhruvamadhruveṇa sumahatsūkṣmeṇa yadbhidyate || 79|| ajñānāndhamabāndhavaṃ kavalitaṃ rakṣobhirakṣābhidhaiḥ kṣiptaṃ mohamahāndhakūpakuhare durhṛdbhirābhyantaraiḥ | krandantaṃ śaraṇāgataṃ gatadhṛtiṃ sarvāpadāmāspadaṃ mā mā muñca maheśa peśaladṛśā satrāsaprāśvāsaya || 80|| yadviśvoddharaṇakṣamā'pyaśaraṇatrāṇaikaśīlāpi te māmārttaṃ dṛgupekṣate sa mahimā duṣṭasya me karmmaṇaḥ | devyāṃ divyamṛtaiḥ payodharadhṛtaiḥ pṛthvīṃ pṛṇatyāṃ (stṛṇantyām)kaṇā dvitrāścenna mukhe patanti śikhinaḥ kiṃ vācyametaddivaḥ || 81|| śubhraṃ bibhrattaruṇakaruṇā''krāntamaśrāntamantaḥ svāntaṃ śāntapraṇatajanatākleśaleśapraveśam | prāṇatrāṇapraṇayakṛpaṇaprākṛtaprāṇivarga- vyāpattāpakṣapaṇanipuṇāṃ muñca caṇḍīśa vāṇīm || 82|| adabhraśvabhreyaṃ bhavasaraṇirātaṅkabahulā galadbodhajyotsnā niravadhirasau moharajanī (mohajananī)| nayantyete śāntiṃ viṣamaviṣayotpātamarutaḥ pradīpaṃ prajñākhyaṃ pratidiśa dṛśaṃ kleśaśamanīm || 83|| śarīraṃ nīrogaṃ navamapi vayaḥ saṃskṛtimatī matirvandyā jātiḥ prabhurapi bhavān bhaktisulabhaḥ | itīyaṃ sāmagrī sukṛtaśatalabhyā vighaṭate na yāvattāvanme śa‍ṛṇu karuṇamākranditamidam || 84|| jayanti kṛtinaḥ kaveramṛtasārasiktākṣarā vikasvaraśaratsudhākarakarānukāritviṣaḥ | purāripadapaṅkajastavapavitracitrakramāḥ samunmiṣitamālatīmukulakomalāḥ sūktayaḥ || 85|| śivastavakṛto madhau malayavāyuvellallatā- galanmadhumadonmadabhramarapuñjaguñjacchalāt | nadanmadanaśiñjinījhaṇitabhītasīmantinī- bhujākalitakandharā adhivasanti līlāvanam || 86|| adūrabahiraṅganopavanajātacūtāvalī- vilīnakalakokilākalitakākalīkūjitaiḥ | valanmalayamārutapracaladullasanmallikā- vikāsikusumaskhaladbhramaramaṇḍalīguñjitaiḥ || 87|| nigūḍhatimighaṭṭanasphuritadīrghikāsambhrama- trasatkamalakoṭarasthitamarālabālasvanaiḥ | raṭatpaṭahajhallarīmurajatūryabherīgaṇa- praṇādamukharībhavadbhavanabarhikekāravaiḥ || 88|| sudhāmadhuravāruṇīrasakaṣāyakaṇṭhodbhava- nnavaśrutirasāyanapraguṇagāyanīgītakaiḥ | pravīṇaparivādakoditavibhāsarāgasvara- kramānugatavallakīvikacakīcakaprakvaṇaiḥ || 89|| prabhātaguṇavarṇanapravaṇabandivṛndastuti- prabuddhaśukasārikākalahakelikolāhalaiḥ | bahirviharadaṅganāraṇitaratnakāñcīguṇa- kvaṇatkanakakiṅkiṇījhaṇajhaṇāravāḍambaraiḥ || 90|| khurakṣatavasundharoddhuraturaṅgaheṣonmiṣa- tprabodhadhutakandharadviradakaṇṭhaghaṇṭāravaiḥ | smarā'lasavilāsinīstanabharoparuddhorasa- styajanti śayanaṃ śanairuṣasi śambhuśaṃsājuṣaḥ || 91|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``karuṇākrandanaṃ'' nāmakaṃ daśamaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 11. dīnākrandanaṃ ekādaśaṃ stotram dhanyo'smi samyagamṛtaṃ kimapi sravantī sañjīvanaṃ bhagavatī vidadhāti yasya | snehasnutastanayugā jananīva jīva- rakṣārthamārttividhurasya mamoktidevī || 1|| dhanyo'smi duḥsahavipatpatitasya yasya vāṇīdhṛtonnatirapuṇyakṛtāmabhūmiḥ | kalyāṇinī sumanasāmupasevanīyā saumeravīva padavī na davīyasīyam || 2|| dhanyo'smi mohatimirāndhadṛśo'pi yasya sānugraheṇa vidhinā parikalpitā me | valgusvanā guṇavatī dhṛtavakrabhaṅgi- rārādhanāya giriśasya sarasvatīyam || 3|| sañjīvanauṣadhirabaimi navā bhavāgni- bhasmīkṛtasya vidhinā mama nirmiteyam | vāṇī śivaikaviṣayābhinavoḍhagaurī- dṛṣṭicchaṭeva cakitā makaradhvajasya || 4|| jāne kathañciduditā mama śokavahni- taptātskhalanmṛdupadā hṛdayādiyaṃ gauḥ | cetaḥ pravekṣyati śanaiḥ karuṇāmṛtaugha- niḥṣyandaśītamapi śītamayūkhamauleḥ || 5|| yaccāṭucāpalamalaṅghyabhavabhramo'haṃ mohaṃ vahanniha muhurmuhurācarāmi | tatra spṛhāvahamahāryamahāryaputrī- bhartuḥ parārdhyamaparādhyati saukumāryam || 6|| yo mūrdhani dhvanadanargalanirjharaugha- jhāṅkāriṇīmamaranirjhariṇīṃ dadhānaḥ | gṛhṇāti bhaktajanataḥ kalaśābhiṣekaṃ kastaṃ na vijñapayituṃ vibhumutsahet || 7|| dagdhosmi tāvadamunā damunā mamā'nta- ryaḥ prajjvalatyaghanidāghanidānajanmā | muktasya me pratibhayātibhayākulasya vāṇī kathaṃ vigalato galato'bhyudeti || 8|| krandāmyataḥ kimapi nāma pinākapāṇe tīvrārttinistaraṇakāraṇa kātaro'ham | mohāṭavīvikaṭasaṅkaṭasaṃsthitasya tanme'vadhāraya śivāya śivāturasya || 9|| ākrandamindudhara dhāraya deva karṇe kastvatparaḥ paramakāraṇa karṇadhāraḥ | mūrdhnā vahannuḍupakhaṇḍamakhaṇḍapuṇyaṃ kaṃ kaṃ na tārayasi saṃsṛtisāgarādyaḥ || 10|| asmādṛśairaśucibhiścaṭucāpalāni kḷptānyavaimi na manastava nandayanti | āvarjanāya vihitānyapi candramaule kauleyakasya laḍitāni kimādriyante || 11|| yadvā na mugdhacaritānyapi na prasāda- mutpādayanti bhavataḥ karuṇārṇavasya | svāmindaratpuravihāraparasya kiṃ na ceto haranti tava bālakavalgitāni || 12|| dīnairvimugdhavacanairasamañjasārthai- ryadvaddravanti hṛdayāni dayānidhīnām | tadvanna dṛṣṭasabhasapratibhapragalbha- sandarbhagarbharacanāñcitavākprapañcaiḥ || 13|| dugdhābdhido'pi payasaḥ pṛṣataṃ vṛṇoṣi dīpaṃ tridhāmanayano'pyurarīkaroṣi | vācāṃ prasūtirapi mugdhavacaḥ śa‍ṛṇoṣi kiṃ kiṃ karoṣi na vinītajanānurodhāt || 14|| yatsatyavatyapi jagadviditā'nasūyā vāṇī mameyamidameva hi deva citram | atyadbhutaṃ punaridaṃ yadarundhatīyaṃ tvāmārirādhayiṣurevamudīritā'pi || 15|| sve dhāmni hṛdi kṛtasthitimuktidevīṃ kṛtvā praveśamanayaḥ svayamunmukhatvam | dhārādhirūḍhavirahavyathitāmidānī- mādhāya dhairyamavadhārayasītyayuktam || 16|| ekā tvameva bhavitāsi mama priyeti dattaṃ varaṃ smarasi cedgirirājaputryāḥ | premṇā bibharṣi kathamambarasindhumindu- lekhāṃ ca mūrdhni hṛdaye dayitāṃ dayāṃ ca || 17|| etāṃ nisargasaralāmabhijātamugdhā- maddhā'vadhīrayasi dhīragabhīramānī | jānāsi kiṃ na śataśo natasāntvaneṣu yadvṛddhayā karuṇayā narinartito'si || 18|| prastauti nistrapatayārttikadarthiteyaṃ cāṭūni karttumapi maugdhyavisaṃsthulāni | kātyāyanīvacanadurlalitasya tāni muktopamāni na manastava nandayanti || 19|| asyāmasahyavirahajvarakātarāyāṃ prītirna te yadi paraṃ niravagrahasya | sarvāntarārttidalanāya dṛḍhā pratijñā vijñātatattva kathamīśvara vismṛtā te || 20|| satyaṃ kalāṃ vahasi bibhradumāṃ yadardhe dhatse dayāṃ hṛdi yayārthiṣu nartayantyā | nīto'si nīlagala nīlagalatvameva madvāci sāci tu mukhaṃ kuruṣe ruṣeva || 21|| gṛhṇāsi mūrdhani jalairdhavalairvilolai- rudvelitāṃ nijapadaskhalitāṃ dyusindhum | etāmananyagatimujjhasi sādhuvṛttāṃ vācaṃ svatantracaritasya kimucyate te || 22|| kiṃ bhūyasā yadi na te hṛdayaṅgameya- masyā gṛhe vasasi kiṃ hṛdaye madīye | sārdhaṃ priyeṇa vasanaṃ tadupekṣaṇaṃ ca duḥkhāvahaṃ hi maraṇādapi māninīnām || 23|| mātaḥ sarasvati badhāna dhṛtiṃ tvadīyāṃ vijñaptimārttividhurāṃ vibhave nivedya | devī śivā śaśikalā gaganāpagā ca kurvantyavaśyamabalājanapakṣapātam || 24|| eṣā nisargakuṭilā yadi candralekhā svargāpagā ca yadi nityataraṅgiteyam | devī dayārdrahṛdayā tu nagendrakanyā dhanyā kariṣyati na te nibiḍāmavajñām || 25|| tvāmeva devi śaraṇīkaravāṇi vāṇi kalyāṇi sūktibhirupastuhi candramaulim | mātarnayāmi na punabhavatīmalīka- vācālabāliśavilaṅghanabhājanatvam || 26|| devi prapannavarade guṇagauri gauri yadgauriyaṃ parimitaṃ sravatīha kiñcit | tatsvāmine samucite samaye supāka- mākūtavedini nivedayituṃ prasīda || 27|| svecchāvikalpitamadṛṣṭaviśiṣṭapākaṃ mātrāvihīnamidamāryajanairajuṣṭam | unmattabhāṣitamathāpi bhavatyavaśyaṃ sadbheṣajaṃ viṣamayasya bhavāmayasya || 28|| bhālānalaṃ tava yathā mukuṭasthitaiva śaknoti no śamayituṃ kila siddhasindhuḥ | tadvajjvalantamaniśaṃ hṛdi śokavahniṃ vaktre vasantyapi mamā'tra sarasvatīyam || 29|| prākcenmayā vihitamāvilameva karma svāmin kutastvayi mamaiṣa dṛḍho'nurāgaḥ | ekāntaśuklamatha cedatiduḥsaho'yaṃ śokānalo hṛdayadāhakaraḥ kimantaḥ || 30|| kvāpyanyajanmani vidhāya vibhoravaśya- mārādhanāmanuśayālu mano mamābhūt | no cet kathaṃ kulaguṇādipavitrameta- tsarvaṃ nṛjanma mama niṣphalameva jātam || 31|| mānuṣyanāvamadhigamya cirādavāpya nistārakaṃ ca karuṇābharaṇaṃ bhavantam | yasyā'bhavadbharavaśastarituṃ bhavābdhiṃ so'haṃ bruḍāmi vada kasya viḍambaneyam || 32|| svāmī prasādamupakāriṣu sevakeṣu yogyeṣu sādhuṣu karoti kimatra citram | santastvabhājanajaneṣvapi nirnimittaṃ cittaṃ vahanti karuṇāmṛtasārasiktam || 33|| tasmātsamāptasakalā'bhyudayābhyupāya- māyastacetasamasambhavabhagnavṛttam | sīdantamantakabhayādabhayārpaṇena sambhāvaya svayamanarthakadarthitaṃ mām || 34|| tvāṃ nītimān bhajati yaḥ sa bhavatyanīti- rmuktaḥ sa yo hi bhavatā hṛdayānna muktaḥ | yaste rato'pacitaye'pacitiṃ sa naiti tattvāṃ śrito'smi bhavamasmyabhavo na kasmāt || 35|| svāpaḥ sacintamanaso niśi me durāpo nirdāha eva gamayāmi kadā sadāhaḥ | rakṣa tvadekavaśagaṃ śiva māmavaśyaṃ kasmādbhavasyaparuṣo mama karkaśastvam || 36|| pāpaḥ khalo'hamiti nā'rhasi māṃ vihātuṃ kiṃ rakṣayā kṛtamaterakutobhayasya | yasmādasādhuradhamo'hamapuṇyakarmā tasmāttavāsmi sutarāmanukampanīyaḥ || 37|| svaireva yadyapi gato'hamadhaḥ kukṛtyai- statrāpi nātha tava nāsmyavalepapātram | dṛptaḥ paśuḥ patati yaḥ svayamandhakūpe nopekṣate tamapi kāruṇiko hi lokaḥ || 38|| atyunnatānnijapadāccapalaścyuto'yaṃ bhūrīnbhramiṣyati jaḍaprakṛtiḥ kumārgān | matveti cettyajasi māmayamīdṛgeva gāṅgastvayā kimiti mūrdhni dhṛtaḥ pravāhaḥ || 39|| hantā'yamārtimapi nārakiṇāṃ dhṛtaśce- nmūrdhnā kileti vahase yadi gāṅgamogham | etattavocitamanāthajanārtibhaṅga- hevākino ghanaghṛṇāmṛtasāgarasya || 40|| asmādṛśasya rasanā tu sahasradheyaṃ gacchedavāpya tava śīrṣamitīrayantī | kiṃ tūddharāmi bhavadagrapadāvamarśa- mātrādahaṃ trijagatīmiti me pratijñā || 41|| kṣāmo nikāmajaḍimā kuṭilaḥ kalāvān doṣākaro'yamiti cettyajasi prabho mām | etādṛśairupagato'pi samastadoṣaiḥ kasmāttvayā śirasi nātha dhṛtaḥ śaśāṅkaḥ || 42|| śāntākṛtirdvijapatirvimalaḥ kalaṅka- muktaḥ kileti yadi mūrdhni vidhuṃ bibharṣi | evaṃvidho'pi bhavatā kathamaṅghri pīṭha- prānte'pi dhartumucito na samarthito'ham || 43|| pāpagraho dhṛtimupaiti vinā pareṣāṃ na svāpahāramayamityatha māṃ jahāsi | evaṃvidho'pi tava dakṣiṇadṛṣṭipāta- pātratvamīśvara kathaṃ rucimānupetaḥ || 44|| mitratvameṣa bhavato guṇibandhutāṃ ca prakhyāpya cedupagatastava vallabhatvam | dāsatvameva tava nityamupetya bhūtvā sevāparaśca guṇināṃ kathamapriyo'ham || 45|| atyūṣmalaṃ malinamārgamanekajihvaṃ sparśe'pyanarhamavadhārya jahāsi cenmām | etādṛśo'pi śubhadṛṣṭiniveśanasya pātrīkṛtaḥ kathamayaṃ bhavatā''śrayāśaḥ || 46|| yadbandhujīvadalasadrucirarthibhāva- māyāti sādhuvibudhavrajajīvanāya | yanmitramaṇḍalamukhena ca viśvameṣaḥ puṣṇāti tena dahane yadi sādaro'si || 47|| āpyāyanaṃ sumanasāmaniśaṃ vidhātu- marthībhavāmi yadi ko'pi na me'sti dātā | kartuṃ ca bandhujanajīvanamakṣamo'haṃ viśvaṃ ca poṣayitumīśa suhṛnmukhena || 48|| tenā'tra māṃ niraparādhamavehi dehi dṛṣṭiṃ prasādaviśadāmamṛtadravārdrām | dīnaṃ dayāspadamadabhramadabhrameṇa bhrūvibhrameṇa sadayaṃ bhaja bhaṅgureṇa || 49|| anvagrahīramaladṛṣṭisamarpaṇena mitraṃ śuciṃ dvijapatiṃ yadi yuktametat | evaṃvidhe'pi bhagavan dṛśamaprasannāṃ dhatse mayīti vidhireṣa parāṅmukho me || 50|| niṣkarṇa eṣa kusṛtivyasanī dvijihvo matveti cettyajasi niḥśaraṇaṃ prabho mām | etādṛśo'pi pavanāśana eṣa kasmā- cchrīkaṇṭha kaṇṭhapuline bhavatā gṛhītaḥ || 51|| jihvāsahasrayugalena purā stutastva- metena tena yadi tiṣṭhati kaṇṭhapīṭhe | ekaiva me tava nutau rasanā'sti tena sthānaṃ maheśa bhavadaṅghritale mamā'stu || 52|| śa‍ṛṅgī vivekarahitaḥ paśurunmado'yaṃ matveti cetpariharasyatikātaraṃ mām | evaṃvidho'pi vṛṣabhaścaraṇārpaṇena nītastvayā kathamanugrahabhājanatvam || 53|| pṛṣṭhe bhavantamayamudvahate kadāci- detāvatā yadi tavaiti dayāspadatvam | svāminnahaṃ tu hṛdaye'nvahamudvahāmi tvāmityataḥ kathamaho na tavā'nukampyaḥ || 54|| krūraḥ parāṅmukhamasāvanṛjurjahāti yogyaṃ guṇagrahaṇakarmaṇi mārgaṇaugham | matveti cettyajasi māṃ kathamīdṛgeva svāmindhṛtaḥ karatale bhavatā pinākaḥ || 55|| koṭiṃ parāmupagate'pi guṇe nitāntaṃ namraṃ vimṛśya yadi nā'jagavaṃ jahāsi | svalpe guṇe'pi natimānatimātrameva kiṃ tacca yena na bhavāmi tavānukampyaḥ || 56|| atyantatīkṣṇamatikarkaśamārjavena kṛtvā praveśamatimātramaruntudaṃ mām | matvā jahāsi yadi nātha kimarthameta- devaṃvidhaṃ vahasi hastagataṃ triśūlam || 57|| jñātvā'tha cetsamarasaṃhitakarmayogyaṃ koṭitrayojjvalamukhaṃ triśikhaṃ bibharṣi | niḥsvaṃ na kiṃ samarasaṃ hitakarmayogyaṃ māṃ vetsi yena kuruṣe mayi na prasādam || 58|| nyagbhāvitadvijamakharvitapūrvadeva- gurvā'padarpaṇaparaṃ kṛtagotrabhedam | sambhāvya cettyajasi māṃ kathamīdṛgeva netrotsavastava jagadvijayī kumāraḥ || 59|| mattvā'tha nātha śucijātimamuṃ viśākha- masminmano yadi bibharṣi dṛḍhaprasādam | evaṃvidho'pyahamananyaparāyaṇaste kasmādbhavāmi bhagavannavalepabhūmiḥ || 60|| sarvāpahāraratirunmadavakravaktra- styājyo'smi karṇacapalo yadi tundilaste | evaṃvidho'pi bhagavan gaṇanāyakatve kasmādayaṃ gajamukho bhavatā niyuktaḥ || 61|| hastaṃ sadā vahati dānajalāvasiktaṃ tenaiṣa cedalabhata pramathādhipatyam | dānaṃ pradātumadhano yadi na kṣamo'haṃ dāsatvamastu mama deva bhavadgaṇānām || 62|| heyo'smyasevakatayā tava ced graheṣu kurvatsu tulyamakhileṣvapi rāśibhogam | dvāvujjhatastava na dṛkpathamarkacandrā- vetāvatā parihṛtā bhavatā kimanye || 63|| balāvubhau dvijapatī tava nātha bhaktā- vekastayorharati santamasaṃ prajānām | tenāvṛtaṃ yadi paraṃ sahase maheśa draṣṭuṃ tato viṣamadṛṣṭiriti śruto'si || 64|| yuktaṃ ripau suhṛdi vā samadarśanasya doṣoddhate'pi yadi te hṛdayaṃ dayārdram | tatsāmprataṃ gativihīnamanātmanīnaṃ dīnaṃ janaṃ prati kutaḥ karuṇā'valepaḥ || 65|| abhyudgamo'yamaśaneramṛtāṃśumbimbā- tsvāminnasau dinamaṇestimiraprarohaḥ | yuṣmādṛśasya kauṇāmbunidherakasmā- dasmādṛśeṣvaśaraṇeṣvavadhīraṇaṃ yat || 66|| svāmin mṛḍastvamuruduḥkhabharārdito'haṃ mṛtyuñjayastvamatha mṛtyubhayākulo'ham | gaṅgādharastvamahamugrabhavopatāpa- taptaḥ kathaṃ kathamahaṃ na tavānukampyaḥ || 67|| bhavajīrṇajvarātāpa-mohakampākulāya me | ekaṃ sudarśanasyāṃśaṃ dehi viśvacikitsaka ! || bhaktapriyaḥ svayamapi kṣudhayā'nvitasya pānotsavaikarasiko'pi pipāsitasya | tāpāturasya ghanasevanasādaro'pi jānāsi nātha na kathaṃ sahasā mamārtim || 68|| sarvajña sarvamavagacchasi bhūtabhāvi bhāgyakṣayaḥ punarasau bhagavan mamaiva | jānāsi yasya hṛdayasthita eva nārtīṃ jñātvā'pi vā gajanimīlitamātanoṣi || 69|| bhāle'nalaṃ tava gale garalaṃ kare ca śūlaṃ prakāśamakhilo'yamavaiti lokaḥ | antargataṃ trayamidaṃ tu mama tvameva jānāsi nāsi ca dayālurato hato'ham || 70|| ekastvameva bhavināmanimittabandhu- rnaisargikī tava kṛpā savituḥ prabheva | vāmaḥ punarmama vidhiḥ paridevitāni jātānya(jānāsi)raṇyaruditena samāni yasya || 71|| atyantadurbhagamayogyamabhāgyabhāja- mājanmanarmavimukhaṃ mukharogravācam | daivādavāpya sakalāpasadaṃ maheśa naivā'tyajatkulavadhūriva durgatirmām || 72|| muktvā samādhimasamādhiharaṃ paraṃ ca proddāmadhāma śiva dhāma sudhāmayaṃ te | bhrānto'smi tena malayānilavellyamāna- kallolalolanidhanāni dhanāni labdhum || 73|| ārādhitāḥ pracapalāścapalāvadeva duṣṭeśvarā na guravo guravo guṇaughaiḥ | yātāni tāni mama hānimahāni mithyā śrānto'smi hā vitatamohatamohato'ham || 74|| tṛṣṇā dināddinamabṛṃhata baṃhimana- māyāminī manasi haimanayāminīva | nātha tridhāmanayanā'rpayadṛkprasādaṃ sādaṃ nayāndhatamasaṃ bhramasambhṛtaṃ me || 75|| stambhaṃ vijṛmbhayati dambhamayaṃ bhramaṃ ca kañcitprapañcayati yacchati vāci mudrām | kaṃ nāma nā''mayamayaṃ prathayatyakharva- garvajvarajvalanaduḥsahasannipātaḥ || 76|| tatsāmprataṃ bhuvanaviśrutahastasiddhiṃ tvāmoṣadhīpatiśikhāmaṇimāśrayāmi | maunaṃ vimudraya daridraya mohanidrāṃ vidrāvaya drutamupadravamindriyāṇām || 77|| visrambhamambhasi bhaje bhagavannagādhe bādhe ripuvyavasite'pyalasībhavāmi | jāgarmi yanna samavartini hantukāme kā me gatiryadi karoṣi manāgavajñām || 78|| mohāndhyaharaṇāttīvrabhavajvara-nivāraṇe | dehināṃ dakṣa ekastvamoṣadhīśaśikhāmaṇiḥ || yaste dadāti ravamasya varaṃ dadāsi yo vā madaṃ vahati tasya damaṃ vidhatse | ityakṣaradvayaviparyayakeliśīlaḥ kiṃ nāma kurvati namo na manaḥ karoṣi || 79|| candraḥ kare śirasi cakṣuṣi pādamūle mūrtāvapīti śiva candrasubhikṣametat | tāpāndhakāravidhuraṃ śaraṇāgataṃ ki- māyātu laṅghitavatastava moghabhāvam || 80|| kauṭilyamindudalato na sudhāmayatva- mūṣmāṇamūrdhvanayanānna paraṃ prakāśam | mālinyameva galato na gabhīrabhāvaṃ tvatto'pi me titau kalpamavāpa cetaḥ || 81|| kiṃ varṇayāmi gurutāṃ vipadaḥ pade māṃ sthāṇornyayuṅkta yadiyaṃ sahasopadiśya | niḥśākhatāṃ sumanasāmanumeyabhāvaṃ vicchāyatāṃ viphalatāṃ rasahīnatāṃ ca || 82|| sarvajñaśambhuśivaśaṅkaraviśvanātha- mṛtyuñjayeśvaramṛḍaprabhṛtīni deva | nāmāni te'nyaviṣaye phalavanti kintu tvaṃ sthāṇureva bhagavan mayi mandabhāgye || 83|| śvete sudarśanasamarpaṇatatparasya kṛṣṇe ca yasya na babhūva viśeṣabuddhiḥ | sattvaṃ śriyaṃ sṛjasi puṇyajaneṣu māṃ ca muñcasyapuṇyajanameṣa vidhiḥ kṣato me || 84|| āvarjanaṃ kratubhujāṃ gajavājiratna- śrīpārijātamadirendusudhā'rpaṇena | kṛtvā'grahīrgaralamātmani yanmahimnā sā te kva sampati kṛpā mayi mandabhāgye || 85|| dṛpteṣu te madanadakṣayamā'ndhakeṣu prādurbhavanmanasi roṣaviṣaprarohaḥ | siktaḥ sudhāmayamasūta yayā prasādaṃ sā te kva samprati kṛpā mayi bhāgyahīne || 86|| kecidvarasya bhagavannabhayasya keci- tsāndrasya kecidamṛtasya karasthitasya | prāpuḥ kṛpāpraṇayinastava bhājanatvaṃ śūlasya kevalamabhāgyaparikṣato'ham || 87|| abhrāntavṛtti bhavatāntaradhiṣṭhitaṃ me cetaḥ prakāśavapuṣā raviṇeva bimbam | sopaplavaṃ yadi kṛtaṃ tamasā kadāci- dakṣīṇapuṇyamahimaiva tadā vibhāti || 88|| jānāmi nā'mṛtamayaṃ hṛdayaṃ praveṣṭu- muddāmaduḥkhadavadāhahatastavā'ham | dhartuṃ hṛdi tridaśasindhusudhāsudhāṃśu- śītaṃ bhavantamapi na prabhavāmi dhiṅmām || 89|| kṣīṇaḥ kṣatā'khilakalaḥ pravilīnadhāmā tvāmāśrito'smi savitāramivā'mṛtāṃśuḥ | nāstyeva jīvanakalā mama kācidanyā pādārpaṇena kuruṣe yadi na prasādam || 90|| ghorāndhakāravidhuraṃ vividhopatāpa- taptaṃ vipadgurutuṣāraparāhataṃ mām | tvaṃ cejjahāsi vada kastapanenduvahni- netro hariṣyati parastrividhāṃ mamārtim || 91|| vyaktirna yasya na matirna gatirna śakti- rnāpi smṛtirvipadapasmṛtipīḍitasya | tasyauṣadhīśamukuṭaṃ trijagadguruṃ tvāṃ muktvā kariṣyati paro mama kaścikitsām || 92|| tvaṃ nirguṇaḥ śiva tathāhamatha tvadīyaṃ śūnyaṃ paraṃ kimapi dhāma tathā madīyam | tvaṃ cedgavi pravidadhāsi dhṛtiṃ tathā'haṃ kaṣṭaṃ śivastvamaśivastu vidhikṣato'ham || 93|| kāmastvayīva mayi niṣphalatāmavāpa kṣipto mayāpi viphalo bhavateva kālaḥ | vidhvastadhāma mama deva vapustaveva kaṣṭaṃ śivastvamaśivastu vidhikṣato'ham || 94|| yadvadvibho tava hṛdi pravibhāti nāga- stadvanmamāpi bhavadekaparāyaṇasya | yadvatsvadharmaniratastvamahaṃ tathaiva kaṣṭaṃ śivastvamaśivastu vidhikṣato'ham || 95|| mūrttistaveva śiva me vidhurociteyaṃ dṛṣṭistaveva bhagavan viṣamā mamāpi | śūlī viṣādahataśaktirahaṃ yathā tvaṃ kaṣṭaṃ śivastvamaśivastu vidhikṣato'ham || 96|| kaṇṭhe viṣaṃ vasati me viṣamaṃ taveva bhūteśvaraḥ paśupatiśca bhavānivā'ham | aṅgaṃ mamāpi gururugjavalitaṃ taveva kaṣṭaṃ śivastvamaśivastu vidhikṣato'ham || 97|| svarbhānugīrṇamiva pūrṇaśaśāṅkabimbaṃ bālāṅganāṅgamiva dāruṇarugvirugṇam | śrīkhaṇḍacandanamivā'jagaropagūḍhaṃ vyūḍhaṃ nṛpasya piśunairiva pādamūlam || 98|| hālāhalāktamiva dugdhamahābdhinīraṃ tīraṃ mahāmakararuddhamiva dyusindhoḥ | dāridryadagdhamiva sādhugṛhasthavṛttaṃ cittaṃ samatsaramiva śrutaviśrutasya || 99|| vidyāvihīnamiva satkulajasya rūpaṃ nirdānabhogamiva kāpuruṣasya vittam | mānuṣyamujjvalakulaśrutaśīlaśuddhaṃ jātaṃ vipadvidhuritaṃ mama śocanīyam || 100|| paścātpuraḥ pratidiśaṃ ca vimṛśya paśya- nkrūraṃ kṛtāntahatakaṃ phaṇipāśapāṇim | bhūmau patāmi kṛpaṇaṃ pralapāmi pāda- pīṭhe luṭhāmi śaṭhavatkaṭhino'si kasmāt || 101|| āḥ kiṃ na rakṣasi nayatyayamantako māṃ helāvalepasamayaḥ kimayaṃ maheśa | mā nāma bhūtkaruṇayā hṛdayasya pīḍā vrīḍāpi nāsti śaraṇāgatamujjhataste || 102|| ajño'si kiṃ kimabalo'si kimākulo'si vyagro'si kiṃ kimaghṛṇosi kimakṣamo'si | nidrālasaḥ kimasi kiṃ madaghūrṇito'si krandantamantakabhayārttamupekṣase yat || 103|| dveṣaḥ kimeṣa kṛpaṇe kimutā'kṣameyaṃ nistriṃśatā kimathavā kimaśaktireva | huṅkāramātrakanirākaraṇīyagarve sarveśa kālahatake yadiyatyupekṣā || 104|| ityādi dūḍhya iva niṣṭhurapuṣṭabhāṣī yatkiñcana grahagṛhīta ivā'staśaṅkaḥ | ārtyā muhurmuhurayuktamapi bravīmi tatrāpi niṣkṛpa bhinatsi na maunamudrām || 105|| bhīte bhavārtividhure caraṇāvalagne bhagnepsite gatimapaśyati kāñcidanyām | kasmādanāgasi manāgasi viśvasākṣi- ndākṣiṇyadigdhahṛdayopi parāṅmukhastvam || 106|| svāminnisargamalinaḥ kuṭilaścalo'ha- metādṛgeva ca ripurmama mṛtyupāśaḥ | bhrūpallavastava tathāvidha eva tasya śāntyai viṣe hi viṣame viṣameva pathyam || 107|| kiṃ kāryamebhiraniśaṃ punaruktaśuktai- rudvegakāribhiralabdhaphalaiḥ pralāpaiḥ | evaṃ vidannapi muhurmukharaṃ viraumi paśyāmi na tvaditaraṃ hi paraṃ śaraṇyam || 108|| tvaṃ cetprasādasumukhaḥ praṇayoktibhiḥ kiṃ tvaṃ cedanādaraparaḥ praṇayoktibhiḥ kim | bhāgyodaye sati vṛthaiva guṇeṣu yatna- stasminnasatyapi vṛthaiva guṇeṣu yatnaḥ || 109|| jānannapīti viramāmi na yatpralāpā- dārttermaheśa mahimaiṣa dṛśastavaiva | yā rātrimeva divasaṃ timiraṃ prakāśa- magniṃ himaṃ garalamapyamṛtaṃ karoti || 110|| ārttiḥ śrutaiva kṛpaṇātkaruṇāṃ tavānta- rutpādayatyaniśamagniśikhāṃ śamīva | jātaiva nirdahati tāmiyamityamutra kiṃ brūmahe mahadanaṅkuśamīśvarasya || 111|| yannāma pāmarajanocitamatra kiñci- daucityamuktamasamañjasamabhyadhāyi | tatrāpi bharturucitā rucirīśvarāṇāṃ cetaścamatkṛtikarī kapijhampikā'pi(eva)|| 112|| caurairgṛhītamapi daṣṭamapi dvijihvai- rgrastaṃ grahairapi niruddhamapi dviṣadbhiḥ | vyāghrairupadrutamapi drutamākṣipadbhi- ranviṣṭamapyavanibhṛtpuruṣaiḥ saroṣaiḥ || 113|| bhūtā'bhibhūtamapi sindhujale'pi magnaṃ bhagnaṃ raṇe'pi patitaṃ davapāvake'pi | kiṃ bhūyasā yamabhaṭairapi kṛṣyamāṇaṃ kastrātumarhati maheśvaramantareṇa || 114|| tajjño batāsmyabhilaṣan sukhamakṣayaṃ ya- dduḥkhaikadhāma vapurasthiramarthayāmi | yadvā bhavābdhitaraṇāya purāṇamugra- śīlaṃ pumāṃsamuḍupārdhadharaṃ śrayāmi || 115|| dṛṅmārgamātrapatitāḥ sahasaiva yasya pañcatvaminduravihavyabhujo'pyavāpuḥ | dhīmānahaṃ bata tameva sadāśivaṃ ya- ddevaṃ śrayāmi śaraṇammaraṇārttibhīruḥ || 116|| sthāṇuḥ sa yatra vibhurasya vadhūraparṇā sā yatra yatra ca tayostanayo viśākhaḥ | prajñāvatāmahamaho pravaraḥ praveṣṭu- micchāmi dhāma tadabhīṣṭaphalāptaye yat || 117|| mārjāraśūkaraśa‍ṛgālakarālavaktra- vetālabhūtaśatasaṅkulamīśvarasya | bhīṣmaṃ niśācarapiśācaravaiḥ praveṣṭu- micchāmi dhāma matimānatimātrabhīruḥ || 118|| karṇekṣaṇādacaraṇāttriphaṇātkṛtānta- pāśāttrasandhṛtasahasraphaṇoragendram | prājñaḥ sahasraśirasaṃ puruṣaṃ sahasra- netraṃ sahasracaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ śrayāmi || 119|| trastaḥ samastajanatā'pahṛtipragalbhā- ddīptā'nalolbaṇadṛśaḥ śiva jīviteśāt | prājñaḥ samastajanatāpahṛtipragal-bhaṃ tvāṃ jīviteśamanalogradṛśaṃ śrayāmi || 120|| nirbhartsitakratumṛgaṃ samaśiśriyattvāṃ saṃnyastalāñchanamṛgaḥ kalayā mṛgāṅkaḥ | yatkāmavairiṇamavetya sakāma eva tvāmāśrito'smi sudhiyāmadhikastato'ham || 121|| padmāśritaḥ śatadhṛtiścaturānano'pi yasmātparābhavamavāpadavācyameva | tyaktaḥ śriyā gatadhṛtirmṛdumandavaktraḥ prājñastamīśvaramanugrahamarthaye'ham || 122|| ājanma karma viracayya phalaṃ yadāptaṃ hṛttvā kṣaṇāttadakhilaṃ cirakālabhogyam | yaḥ svīkarotyapunarāgamanāya bhaktaṃ seve tamīśvaramaho matimattamo'ham || 123|| śmaśānaikasthānavyasanamanalottālanayanaṃ viṣajjyotirjvālājaṭilakuṭilavyālavalayam | vibhuṃ muṇḍaśreṇīvikaṭamukuṭaṃ bhīruhṛdayaḥ śrayan bhīmaṃ dhīmānahamahasanīyaḥ kṛtadhiyām || 124|| aho tattvajñohaṃ karatalavilīnaikaphaṇinaḥ samuttrasyankālātkramakavalitaikaikabhavinaḥ | mahākālaṃ sarvāvayavasulabhānalpabhujagaṃ sakṛdviśvagrāsapravaṇamatimabhyemi śaraṇam || 125|| śa‍ṛṅgī yatra sphaṭikaśikharī yatra śa‍ṛṅgī pinākaḥ śa‍ṛṅgī so'pi sphurati vṛṣabho vallabho yatra bhartuḥ | tatra trastaḥ prakṛtisaralaḥ svalpavāgapragalbhaḥ prājñaḥ sevāsamayamucitaṃ svāminaḥ prārthaye'ham || 126|| viśrāntirna kvacidapi vipadgrīṣmabhīṣmoṣmatapte citte vitte galati phalati prākpravṛtte kuvṛtte | tenātyandhaṃ sapadi patitaṃ dīrghaduḥkhāndhakūpe māmuddharttuṃ prabhavati bhava tvāṃ dayābdhiṃ vinā kaḥ || 127|| yeṣāmeṣā tanudhanalavaprārthanā'narthakanthā panthānaṃ na pradiśati paraṃ sthānamānandi labdhum | teṣāmeṣāmakṛpaṇa kṛpābhājanānāṃ janānā- māśāpāśākulitamanasāṃ dṛṣṭimiṣṭāṃ nidhehi || 128|| udañcaya mukhaṃ manāgabhayaghoṣamudghoṣaya prayaccha viśadāṃ dṛśaṃ gativihīnamāśvāsaya (dhṛtivihīnamāśvāsaya)| kimanyadayamāgataḥ kupitadṛṣṭirutkandharaḥ kṛtānta iti mā sma bhūraviralāvalepālasaḥ || 129|| muhuḥ kimaparaṃ bruve bhujagapāśapāṇiṃ puraḥ sphurantamiva roṣaṇaṃ ravijakiṅkaraṃ paśyataḥ | dhṛtiścalati me gatiḥ skhalati mūrtirudvellati sthitirjvalati nirvṛtirvigalati smṛtirmīlati || 130|| durgaṃ yatsugamatvameti bhajate dūraṃ yadabhyarṇatāṃ yatkrīḍopavanatvameti marubhūrmitrāyate yadripuḥ | yasyāḥ sā bhuvi śaktirapratihatā sārttistvadākrandane svāminmāmanudatkṛpā'pi nudatu tvāṃ matsamāśvāsane || 131|| dvāri śrīśca sarasvatī ca vasataḥ svāmiṃstavā'stakrudhau māṃ tu śrīrbhavadaṅghriviṣṭaratale nityaprarūḍhasthitim | yāvanmātrasarasvatīparicayadveṣādahāsīdato vahniṃ durvahamudvahāmi hṛdaye glāyannudanvāniva || 132|| nātha prāthamikaṃ vivekarahitaṃ tiryagvadastaṃ vaya- stāruṇyaṃ vihataṃ virādhitavadhūvisrambhaṇārambhaṇaiḥ | svāminsamprati jarjarasya jarasā yāvanna dhāvannayaṃ mṛtyuḥ karṇamupaiti tāvadavaśaṃ pādāśritaṃ pāhi mām || 133|| āsīdyāvadakharvagarvakaraṇagrāmābhirāmākṛti- stāvanmohatamohatena na mayā śvabhraṃ puraḥ prekṣitam | adyā'kasmikapātakātaramatiḥ kaṃ prārthaye kaṃ śraye kiṃ śaknomi karomi kiṃ kuru kṛpāmātmadruhaṃ pāhi mām || 134|| jātyandhaḥ pathi saṅkaṭe pravicaranhastā'valambaṃ vinā yātaścedavaṭe nipatya vipadaṃ tatrā'parādho'sya kaḥ | dhigdhiṅmāṃ sati śāstracakṣuṣi sati prajñāpradīpe sati snigdhe svāmini mārgadarśini śaṭhaḥ śvabhre patatyeva yaḥ || 135|| trātā yatra na kaścidasti viṣame tatra prahartuṃ pathi drogdhāro yadi jāgrati pratividhiḥ kastatra śakyakriyaḥ | yatra tvaṃ karuṇārṇavastribhuvanatrāṇapravīṇaḥ prabhu- statrāpi praharanti cetparibhavaḥ kasyaiṣa garhāvahaḥ || 136|| kiṃ śaktena na yasya pūrṇakaruṇāpīyūṣasiktaṃ manaḥ kiṃ vā tena kṛpāvatā parahitaṃ kartuṃ samartho na yaḥ | śaktiścāsti kṛpā ca te yamabhayādbhīto'pi dīno janaḥ prāpto niḥśaraṇaḥ puraḥ paramataḥ svāmī svayaṃ jñāsyati || 137|| bhṛṅgāre karapuṣkarapraṇayini svarnimnagānirjhare sampūrṇe karuṇārase pariṇatasphāre tuṣāratviṣi | asti svādu ca śītalaṃ ca sulabhaṃ pīyūṣamoṣacchide prāptaśca praṇayī puraḥ paramataḥ svāmī svayaṃ jñāsyati || 138|| ārttiḥ śalyanibhā dunoti hṛdayaṃ no yāvadāviṣkṛtā sūte lāghavameva kevalamiyaṃ vyaktā khalasyā'grataḥ | tasmātsarvavidaḥ kṛpā'mṛtanidherāveditā sā vibho- ryadyuktaṃ kṛtameva tatparamataḥ svāmī svayaṃ jñāsyati || 139|| lekhāḥ santu prasannā budhasadasi śucerāgamasyāstu labdhi- rmithyādṛṣṭiśca mābhūdanupadhirahato dīrghakālo'stu bhogaḥ | sabhyāḥ sarve'nuvṛttiṃ vidadhatu tadapi nyāyato nāsti muktiḥ samyagdarśī pramātā racayati na bhavānīśvaraścedvicāram || 140|| jānubhyāmupasṛtya rugṇacaraṇaḥ ko merumārohati śyāmākāmukabimbamambaratalādutplutya gṛhṇāti kaḥ | ko vā bāliśabhāṣitaiḥ prabhavati prāptuṃ prasādaṃ prabho- rityantarvimṛśannapīśvara balādārtyāsmi vācālitaḥ || 141|| dhatte pauṇḍrakaśarkarā'pi kaṭutāṃ kaṇṭhe ciraṃ carvitā vairasyaṃ varanāyikā'pi kurute saktyā bhṛśaṃ sevitā | udvegaṃ gaganāpagā'pi janayatyantarmuhurmajjanād viśraddhāṃ madhurā'pi puṣyati kathā dīrgheti viśramyate || 142|| itthaṃ tattadanantasantatalasaccintāśatavyāyata- vyāmohavyasanāvasannamanasā dīnaṃ yadākranditam | tatkāruṇyanidhe nidhehi hṛdaye tvaṃ hyantarātmā'khilaṃ vetsyantaḥsthamato'rhasi praṇayinaḥ kṣantuṃ mamā'tikramam || 143|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``dīnākrandanaṃ'' nāmaikādaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 12. tamaḥśamanaṃ dvādaśaṃ stotram makhairupāsyo'pi nayajñasevyo nirāmayo'pi prathitograśūlaḥ | vedapriyo'pyaśrutivallabho yaḥ śrayāmi taṃ devamacinyaśaktim || 1|| stutyastvameva stutikṛttvameva stutistvameva tvadṛte'sti nānyat | iyaṃ tvavidyā yadahaṃ stuve tvāṃ stutyeti mithyā pṛthagarthabuddhiḥ || 2|| staumyeva tatrāpi punaḥ punastvāṃ naśyatyavidyā yadavidyayaiva | rajaḥprarūḍhaṃ mukure pramārṣṭuṃ rajo vinā na hyaparo'styupāyaḥ || 3|| vijṛmbhamāṇe tamasi pragal-bhe yathā bhavāsaktamatiḥ sthito'ham | hate'pi tasminnuditāvabodhastathā bhavāsaktamatirbhaveyam || 4|| jagadvidheyaṃ sasurāsuraṃ te bhavān vidheyo bhagavan kṛpāyāḥ | sā dīnatāyā namatāṃ vidheyā mamā'styayatnopanataiva seti || 5|| jāne na śaithilyamupaiṣyavaśyaṃ mamārtibhaṅge bhagava~stathāpi | vijñapyase karma mamaiva mābhūnmayi prasādapratighastaveti || 6|| pathyaṃ ca tathyaṃ ca bharakṣamaṃ ca snigdhaṃ ca mugdhaṃ ca manoharaṃ ca | salīlamunmīlya vacaḥ prasannaṃ prapannamāśvāsaya candramaule || 7|| madhudravārdraṃ viṣamāharāmaḥ piṇḍīnigūḍhaṃ baḍiśaṃ gilāmaḥ | antarniviṣṭotkaṭakaṇṭakaughaṃ grasāmahe pauṇḍraka(puṇḍraka)piṇḍakhaṇḍam || 8|| yadā mukhe kāmadhurānajasraṃ vipākarūkṣān viṣayān bhajāmaḥ | vibho vidanto'pi kimatra kurmo jahāti saktiṃ na matirvarākī || 9|| muktāmayā dīrghaguṇāḥ suvṛttā nairmalyabhājo dadhataḥ phalarddhim | kathaṃ na hārā iva bhaktimantaḥ padaṃ hṛdīśasya bhajanti santaḥ || 10|| guhāśrito dharmaratirgirīśaprathāṃ dadhāno bhavataḥ prasādāt | satyāhitaprītirahīnabhaktirbhavānivāhaṃ bhagavan bhaveyam || 11|| yamekamārādhya mahārisaṅgamā- dasaṃśayaṃ bhaktajanaḥ pramucyate | upasthitastasya bhavatprasādataḥ kathaṃ harerugra mahārisaṅgamaḥ || 12|| sudurlabho'yaṃ bhavati grahaḥ puna- rmukhe'pyasau sannihitā sarasvatī | idaṃ kurukṣetramatīvapāvanaṃ kimarthamarthinyucite vilambase || 13|| na kasya saubhāgyavatī camatkṛtiṃ diśatyasau bhāgyavatī sarasvatī | vibhuṃ jitakleśamapi sthirājinaṃ karoti yatsammukhamasthirājinam || 14|| anujjhitānuttamadānasampadaḥ sadākhilajñānavihīnacetasaḥ | akālabhītiglapitānkaroti yaḥ prabhuḥ prasannaḥ kupitaśca dehinaḥ || 15|| purā ciraṃ yo vidadhe vanāntare vidhuḥ padaṃ rūḍhakuraṅgasauhṛdaḥ | sadā parasvāpaharo'pi yo ravi- stayoḥ samatvaṃ dṛśi yasya bhāsate || 16|| kathaṃ vibho tasya tava pravartatāṃ satāmasevye pathi pātitātmasu | dayāvidheyasya sadā'smadādiṣu prasādapātreṣu manāganādaraḥ || 17|| vibho bhavadbhālavilocanā'nala- prasūtadhūmairiva sāśrulocanaḥ | sagharmaleśastava dakṣiṇekṣaṇa- prarūḍhacaṇḍadyutibhābharairiva || 18|| ghanaprarohatpulakāṅkuro bhava- cchikhaṇḍakhaṇḍendukarotkarairiva | sadantavīṇastuhinaughaśītala- tvaduttamāṅgadyunadījalairiva || 19|| taraṅgitāṅgo bhavadaṅgadasphura- tphaṇīndraphūtkārasamīraṇairiva | bhaveyamānandasudhāpariplutaḥ prasannamālokya bhavantamagrataḥ || 20|| yadeṣa sehe paraśukṣatavyathāṃ prabhoḥ priyaḥ syāmiti candanadrumaḥ | bhujaṅgamāliṅgitakandharo druvaṃ bibharti sāmyaṃ girijāpaterataḥ || 21|| yaccakrire dhṛtanakhāntanipātapīḍāḥ prītiṃ prabhoḥ sumanasāṃ sumanastvametat | yatsvāmino na dahane'pi nipatya sevā- hevākamaujjhadagurorapi gauravaṃ tat || 22|| ādau pradarśya paramāmṛjutāmathānta- rāviśya marmaṇi na yanniśitāstudanti | svāmin śarā iva khalāḥ kṛtino vaneṣu sa tvatpadāmbujarajaḥkaṇajaḥ prasādaḥ || 23|| tvannāma pāmarajanairapi gīyamāna- mānandamarpayati yaṃ hṛdi bhaktibhājām | svāminnamānavayaveṣvakhileṣu nūna- mudbhidyate bahirasau pulakacchalena || 24|| gharmaḥ prakampapulakau giri gadgadatva- mityādayo'ntyasamaye prabhavantyavasthāḥ | tvaddarśanātkṛtadhiyāṃ dadhatāmamanda- mānandamantakabhayādbhagavan pareṣām || 25|| antyakṣaṇe bhava bhavaccaraṇābjasevā- hevākino dadhati kecana kaṇṭhapīṭhe | bhogīndrabhogamadhigamya bhavadgaṇatva- manye kṛtāntakarakoṭarakoṭikṛṣṭam || 26|| bhītābhayārpaṇavidhau kila kālanāśaṃ kartuṃ na yaḥ kṣaṇamapi kṣamate kadāpi | śvetābhayārpaṇaparasya kathaṃ nu kāla- nāśakṣamatvamabhavattava tasya deva || 27|| bhaṅktuṃ na pārayati yaḥ kvacideva deva kāmaṃ kṛpāmṛtamṛdustava dṛṣṭipātaḥ | uddāmaroṣaparuṣaḥ kila kāmabhaṅga- maṅgīcakāra kathameṣa maheśa pūrvam || 28|| kiṃ merumandaramukhā girayaḥ śirobhi- ratyunnatairdadhati garvamakharvamete | etattuṣārakiraṇābharaṇapraṇāma- prahvaṃ jagajjayati māmakamuttamāṅgam || 29|| gātrāntarātiśayaśaṃsi yadetaduccai- rnāmottamāṅgamiti nātha śiro bibharti | tadyujyate bhava bhavaccaraṇāravinda- pīṭhapraṇāmaparamasya namasyamasya || 30|| kiṃ śrīghano'pyasugataḥ kimumādhavo'pi na tvaṃ kadācana janārdanatāṃ bibharṣi | svāmin gajārirapi kiṃ nagajāpriyastvaṃ svātantryamasti yadi vā bhavataḥ kimanyat || 31|| aruṇadyutiglapitaśītadīdhiti- prakaṭīkṛtālikamalaṃ vilokya me | bhavataḥ prabhātamiva bhālalocanaṃ bhajate kadā nu viṣamaṃ śamaṃ tamaḥ || 32|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``tamaḥśamanaṃ'' nāmakaṃ dvādaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 13. prabhuprasādanaṃ trayodaśaṃ stotram atha nutibhiramantharākṣarābhiḥ sujanamanomṛgavāgurābhirābhiḥ | vibhumabhayadamādarādarātikṣapaṇapaṇapravaṇaṃ prasādayāmaḥ || 1|| suramukuṭaviṭaṅkaratnarociḥkhacitanakhāṅkurakesarābhirāmam | puraharacaraṇāravindayugmaṃ śirasi vidhatta kirīṭavāñcchayā kim || 2|| kalayatu bhavatāmabhagnavṛttirharaharaśaṅkaraśaṅkareti sūktiḥ | aviralagalamaṇḍanapratiṣṭhāṃ kimamalamauktikadāmakāmanābhiḥ || 3|| kalayata maṇikuṇḍale'valepaṃ ślathayata nirmmalamallikābhilāṣam | haracaritanutikramairajasraṃ kuruta navaśravaṇāvataṃsalīlām || 4|| iha vihatabhavopatāpamāpatpraśamasamarthamanarthanāśahetum | namati na matimānamānavīyapramadavidhānaparaṃ paraṃ haraṃ kaḥ || 5|| trijagati bhajati sthitiṃ budhānāṃ dhuri duritakṣatiśikṣitaḥ sa ekaḥ | śaśiśakalaśikhāmaṇipraṇāmapraṇayi bibhartī śiraścirasthiraṃ yaḥ || 6|| sa jayati jagadīśaśaktipātastava kavituryadasaktamuktidevī | rasamasamacamatkṛtiprasūtiṃ vitarati kāñcanasiddhimeti yena || 7|| iha vidadhatu nāma pāmarāṇāṃ praṇatikṛtāmapare prabhupratītim | prabhavati na tu mṛtyubhītibhaṅge jagati bhavantamṛte'mṛteśa kaścit || 8|| viyadiyati mahasvimaṇḍale kaḥ śritavati kartumanaṣṭaceṣṭamīṣṭe | viṣamatamatamaḥ prabandhamandhaṃ jagadagadaṃ ghṛṇimantamantareṇa || 9|| śakalitakalitarṣa saprakarṣa prakaṭitaharṣa maharṣabhādhirūḍha | diśa viśadamadabhramabhrasindhudravadhavalaṃ bhavalaṅghanaṃ prasādam || 10|| prabhavati bhavati prasādaramyāṃ diśati dṛśaṃ na vibhā vibhāvarīṇām | savitari vitariṣyati prakāśaṃ nahi mahimaprabhavo vibhāvarīṇām || 11|| samucitasadasadvicāracaryācaturataraḥ kataraḥ kalau madanyaḥ | iha paramaśivaṃ bhavaṃ vijetuṃ paramaśivaṃ bhavameva sevate yaḥ || 12|| śamayitumalamagnimagnireva glayapati hanta himaṃ himaṃ vivṛddham | jarayati ca payaḥ payaḥ kimanyaddharati bhavaṃ bhava eva bhaktibhājām || 13|| varamajinajaṭābhṛtaḥ kapālapraṇayikarasya narasya bhaikṣyavṛttiḥ | smaraharacaraṇāravindasevāvirahavatī na tu cakravartimūrtiḥ || 14|| marubhuvi varamuṣṇaraśmiraśmiprakarakadarthitamūrtirekabhekaḥ | na tu bhavadanurāgabhāgadheyaglapanavipadvikalīkṛto manuṣyaḥ || 15|| kalimalapaṭalī malīmasatvaṃ nayati matiṃ hatadarpa darpaṇābhām | iti śitigala śītaraśmiprasarasitaṃ rasitaṃ tavā'rthayāmaḥ || 16|| nutimukharamukhaḥ prasādapātraṃ bhavati mameti yadaiṣa te kṛtāntaḥ | api kavalitasaptalokalokaḥ prabhavati naiva tadaiṣa me kṛtāntaḥ || 17|| tava ravijapurāndhakapramāthe dṛśi viśikhe triśikhe ca yaḥ kṛtāsthaḥ | paricaraṇaparaḥ purāvirāsīt sa jayati daivatamuttamaṃ kṛśānuḥ || 18|| samajani janitaspṛhaḥ sa ekastrijagati candrakirīṭa kṛṣṇasāraḥ | upakaraṇapadaṃ jagāma kṛttistava caraṇāstaraṇakrameṇa yasya || 19|| janirapi jayati vinītarītirjagati bhujaṅgamapuṅgavasya tasya | maṇikaṭakamudasya yasya śasyaṃ bhava bhavadaṅgadabhaṅgimeti bhogaḥ || 20|| alabhata bhagavannabandhyamekastribhuvanasīmani janma puṅgavendraḥ | tava bhava śavabhasmarūṣitoṃ'ghriḥ śirasi dhṛto vinayānatena yena || 21|| janayati jagati spṛhāṃ na keṣāṃ janirapi kuñjaraśekharasya tasya | tribhuvanamahitasya yasya kṛttirbhava bhavadambaraḍambaraṃ bibharti || 22|| sa jayati jitakāla kālakūṭaḥ svajanipavitritamugdhadugdhasindhuḥ | tava kavalabhuvaṃ javādavāptaḥ kalayati yaḥśitikaṇṭha kaṇṭhapīṭham || 23|| pariṇataśaradindusundarābhaṃ vadanamanabhranabhonibhaśca kaṇṭhaḥ | iti śubhamubhayaṃ vibhorabhinnatridaśadhunīyamunāviḍambi vando || 24|| himahimakarahāri vāri gāṅgaṃ kuvalayakāntikalindakanyakāmbhaḥ | iti śubhamubhayaṃ prabhuprasādādvapuriva hāriharaṃ varaṃ prapadye || 25|| dhṛtakuṭilakalaḥ kilāndhakārī rucitamalīmasabhogibhogayogaḥ | tvayi sapadi parāṅmukhe yathā'haṃ tvamiva mahākalikālabhagnaśaktiḥ || 26|| kavalitaviṣamaklamaṃ dadhānaḥ satatasamāśritatārakārirūpam | dvijapatimukuṭastathaiva jātu tvamiva śiva tvayi sammukhe bhaveyam || 27|| jaya jayada vaco vimuñca muñcanmadhu madhuraṃ janarañjanapragalbham | hara hara duritaṃ mamā'dya mādyadbhava bhava bhīmadabhīmadarśanastvam || 28|| nijavṛjinavijṛmbhitaṃ mamaitattrijagadanugrahanityadīkṣitastvam | kvacidapi bhagavannadṛṣṭapūrvaṃ prathayasi yanmayi vihvale'valepam || 29|| praṇamati vidhure puro'valagne dadhati mayi prasabhaṃ gadābhiyogam | kimiti parijane dayāmṛtārdrāṃ dṛśamapakāravatīva no dadhāsi || 30|| sphuṭavikaṭavikasvarapradīptajvalanamahīnamahīndrahāra cakṣuḥ | balavadalavadarpakālakāmakṣayakaramākaramāśu muñca siddheḥ || 31|| himakaramakaradhvajau na rūpaṃ kavidhiṣaṇau dhiṣaṇaucitīṃ na tīvrām | raṇamaruṇamarutsakhau jigīṣoranuharato haratoṣiṇo na tejaḥ || 32|| ravikaravikasatsitābjaśubhraprasṛmaracāmaracāruhāsinī śrīḥ | bhava na bhavanamujjhati kṣaṇaṃ yatsukṛtavatāṃ tava tāṃ praṇaumi śaktim (bhaktim)|| 33|| yadabhayada bhavatyavasthite'ntaḥ samahima no hi mano viśokamāsīt | viśadaviśadakarmakardame tatsapadi viṣādi viṣāda kena jātam || 34|| nayavinayaviśuddhamantarudyaddahanasamānasamāptaroṣadoṣam | yamaniyamaniyantritaṃ mano me kuru savilāsavilāsinīviraktam || 35|| avasarasarasālasālaghūdyanmadhuravadhūravadhūtacittacintaḥ | sa sakalakaladhautadhauta mūrtistava natimānatimātracitracidyaḥ || 36|| malamalamalaghuṃ vihantumāptuṃ mudamudayaṃ samayaṃ samarthya cāntaḥ | mahamahamahaheśvarapraśaṃsāmayamayamāśrayamāśrayaṃ sukhānām (guṇānām)|| 37|| guṇibhirvibudhairharīndramukhyairbhava saṃsāraripordviṣaḥ stutasya | hitamātanute tava prasādādasuhṛtprāṇaharo'pi puṇyabhājām || 38|| api nātha janārdanasya viṣṇorapi vaikuṇṭha iti prasiddhibhājaḥ | adhikaṃsaruṣo'pi cedbhavatto jhagitiprāgabhavatsudarśanāptiḥ || 39|| api sarvajanā'viruddhabuddherapi tīkṣṇasya paraṃ jitakrudho'pi | na kathaṃ mama sādhunā'pi yadvā jagadīśo'si vibhuḥ kimucyate te || 40|| sumanaḥsulabhe tathā na nāke sumanaḥsundarasaurabhe na cāsthām | sumanaḥsu ca nāśnute sudhārdrāsu manaḥ suṣṭhu yathā bhavatkathāsu || 41|| śrīrdevī jayati yayā kaṭākṣitānāṃ hastasthā sakalasamīhitārthasiddhiḥ | sā yasmādajani tamabdhimarbhakāya prādādyaḥ kathamiva varṇyate sa devaḥ || 42|| nārhatyamandarayamandarayatnalabdhā spardhāṃ sudhā na vasudhā'navadhiśca yasya | so'yaṃ navaḥ śivanavaḥ śivatātaye'stu vidvatsabhājanasabhājanabhājanaṃ vaḥ || 43|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``prabhuprasādanaṃ'' nāma trayodaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 14. hitastotraṃ caturdaśaṃ stotram yena netrakaraśekharaspṛśā hanti santamasamantarīśvaraḥ | aindavaṃ davathuhāri hāri taddhāma kāmadamadabhramastu vaḥ || 1|| bhaktinirbharagabhīrabhāratīvaibhavo bhava bhavannaveṣu yaḥ | śuṣkaśaṣpamiva tasya bhāsate vāsavāsanaparigrahagrahaḥ || 2|| ullasatpulakalāñchitaṃ vapurbāṣpapūritapuṭe vilocane | gadgadā harahareti bhāratī sambhavanti bhavabhaktiśālinām || 3|| nīlakaṇṭha taruṇenduśekhara tryambaka trinayaneti bhaktitaḥ | gadgadaṃ nigadatastṛṇopamaṃ hemapūrṇamakhilaṃ mahītalam || 4|| antakabhrukuṭibhītivihvalaśvetasāntvanavidhau babhūva yat | māṃ prati pratipadaṃ kadarthitaṃ tatkva samprati kṛpāmṛtaṃ tava || 5|| vahniśītakaragharmaraśmayo locanatritayavartinastava | śītatāpatimirārditasya me nātha citralikhitā iva sthitāḥ || 6|| sambhramabhramadamandamandarakṣīranīradhigabhīrayā girā | trātumarhasi kṛtāntakiṅkarairmāmaśarmabhirabhidrutaṃ drutam || 7|| kālakiṅkarakarāntarasphuradbhogabhogipariṇaddhakandharam | antareṇa bhavadīyahuṅkṛtiṃ nātha mocayitumutsaheta kaḥ || 8|| utkaṭabhrukuṭibhīmadarśanadvāḥsthahuṅkṛtikhalīkṛtātmabhiḥ | dvāri yaḥ kṣitibhujāṃ parābhavaḥ sahyate draviṇaleśatṛṣṇayā || 9|| sa tvadāyatanadehalītale puṣpapātrakarapatrikākaram | kañcideva bhavadarcanotsukaṃ candraśekhara karoti kātaram || 10|| antareṇa bhavadaṅghrisevanaṃ deva kevalamiyaṃ viḍambanā | yannṛṇāṃ kamalinīdalaskhalannīraśīkaracalā vibhūtayaḥ || 11|| yattu nirjarataraṅgiṇītaṭe sauhṛdaṃhariṇabālakaiḥ samam | bhūbhṛtāṃ ca tṛṇavadvilokanaṃ śrīriyaṃ bhava bhavatprasādataḥ || 12|| tvāmupetya śaraṇaṃ maheśvaraṃ deva niḥśaraṇa eva cedaham | doṣa eṣa mama jāhnavījale tarṣulo hi śapharaḥ svaduṣkṛtaiḥ || 13|| gadgadodgatagiraścirasthirapremahemanikaṣopalopamam | śaṃsataḥ śiva śiveti śāmbhavaṃ nāma kāmapi daśāṃ praśāsti me || 14|| vāri vāritabhavārti mūrdhni te bhāti bhā'tidhavale himatviṣaḥ | tena te natimimo davacchide dehi dehiṣu karāvalambanam || 15|| mūḍhamūḍhavipadaṃ padaṃ śucāmandhamandhakaripo'ripothitam | moghamoghamitametamenasāṃ māṃ tamāntakaratāra tāraya || 16|| yaṃ svayaṃ svarasabhairavai ravairakṣara kṣapitarākṣasekṣase | māramāra bhuvi bhāsate sa te bhānubhānubharabhāsuraḥ suraḥ || 17|| bāṇabāṇakṛtapūjanairjanairādarādaghaṭi yaistavaṃ stavaḥ | vāstavāstava ta eva tāvatā bandivanditayaśogaṇā gaṇāḥ || 18|| tvāṃ satāmarasavāsavā''savāḥ jñātadurgamagamāgamā''gamāḥ | arcayanti sadinaṃ dinandinaṃ gīrbhirambarasadaḥsadaḥ sadaḥ || 19|| na me tathā prītimanekapālī karoti no vā dayitā'ṅkapālī | yathoktidevī sa vibhuḥ kapālī yayā'rcyate sevakalokapālī || 20|| bhavantamārādhya parārdhyavaibhavaṃ bhavaṃ vidhāya dviṣatāṃ parābhavam | bhavaṃ ca jitvā jahataḥ punarbhavaṃ bhavanti muktāḥ padamāpya śāmbhavam || 21|| na vaṃśavṛttergaṇayāmi tānavaṃ na bandhuraṃ kañcana naumi mānavam | navaṃ tavānanditadevadānavaṃ na vañcito'haṃ racayansadā navam || 22|| dhanañjayākṣaṃ sakalārthasādhanaṃ dhanañjayārādhitamādhibādhanam | dhanaṃ viditvā vipadāṃ viśodhanaṃ dhananti dhanyā vibhumṛddhivardhanam || 23|| kalāpinaḥ prāvṛṣi yadvadambudadhvanirghanānandaviśaṅkalāpinaḥ | kalāpinaddhasphuṭajūṭadhāriṇastathā'mṛtaṃ varṣatu gīḥ kalāpi naḥ || 24|| nṛjanma tasyaiva bhavānavadyaṃ bhavānavadyandavamīkṣate yam | tyajatyajātoparamā samānaṃ ramā'samānandakarī na cainam || 25|| ataḥ paraṃ jagati kimasti nīrasaṃ yaduktamapyasakṛdudīryate vacaḥ | sahasraśaściramapi carvitā punarnavannavaṃ sravati rasaṃ śivastutiḥ || 26|| mṛtyuṃ mṛtyuñjaya jaya jagadghasmaraṃ bhasmabhāvaṃ kāmaṃ kāmaṃ naya nayanajoddhāmadhāmacchaṭābhiḥ | bhavyābha vyākulakulavadhūrutkayetyācarantaṃ satrāsatrāṇacaṇa caritānyadbhutāni stumastvām || 27|| yattatsarganisarganirmitikaraṃ yadrāvaṇadrāvaṇa- vyāpārā'vasarāvasaktamatha yatsaṃvartasaṃvartakam | svābhāsaṃ bhavasambhavasthitilayasphārocitaṃ rocitaṃ bhāsā kāraṇakāraṇaṃ diśatu taddhāmehitaṃ me hitam || 28|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``hitastotraṃ'' nāma caturdaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 15. karuṇārādhanaṃ pañcadaśaṃ stotram adhunā tapaseva devatāmabhi yogena sarasvatīmiva | suhṛdeva samīhitāṃ śriyaṃ praguṇeneva guṇena saṃsadam || 1|| pratibhāmiva kāvyakarmmaṇā vasunā kīrtimivārthigāminā | manasīva śamena nirvṛtiṃ sukṛteneva paratra sadgatim || 2|| karuṇāṃ hariṇāṅkalakṣmaṇaḥ sakalārthā'rpaṇakalpavallarīm | vipadantakarīmupāsituṃ stutileśena manaḥ pravartate || 3|| karuṇāṃ bhavato vikāsinīmamalairīśa guṇairalaṅkṛtām | nalinīmalinīva bhāratī bhajatīyaṃ mama valguvādinī || 4|| upalakṣya tavāndhakāritāṃ mayi dhatte padamandhakāritā | viṣamāmavalokya te dṛśaṃ mama dṛṣṭirviṣamatvamaśnute || 5|| tava vīkṣya vṛṣādharīkṛtiṃ ghaṭate me'pi vṛṣādharīkṛtiḥ | dhṛtavakrakalatvamīkṣya te prathate vakrakalatvameva me || 6|| tava vīkṣya ca bhagnakāmatāmuditeyaṃ mama bhagnakāmatā | karuṇāmapi te samīkṣya me karuṇā gīrna kathaṃ pravartatām || 7|| sasurāsuramānuṣaṃ jagadyadadhīnaṃ sa bhavānapīśvaraḥ | vaśavartipade yayā'rpito jayatīyaṃ karuṇaiva tāvakī || 8|| karuṇā tava jīviteśvarīmatiśete bhagavannumāmapi | umayā hṛtamardhameva yatsakalastvaṃ punaretayā hṛtaḥ || 9|| karuṇā tava śasyate yayā jitakāmo'pi bhavān vaśīkṛtaḥ | idamanyadiyaṃ yadambikāmapi devīmanayadvidheyatām || 10|| jagadambubhuvā bhuvāmbhasā sitabhāsā nabhasā nabhasvatā | dhṛtamuṣṇarucātmanā ca yatkaruṇāyā mahimā taveśa saḥ || 11|| ahataprasarāṃ prasādinīṃ sahasā'pohitatāpasampadam | śaraṇaṃ karuṇātaraṅgiṇīṃ pratipadye tava deva pāvanīm || 12|| praṇayena ciraṃ prasāditā madanāśākulitena cetasā | taruṇī karuṇā karoti te na kathaṃ nātha hṛdi sthiraṃ padam || 13|| bhujagā iva candanadrumaṃ glapayanto viṣamā nayanti mām | parihāryadaśāmarātayo madamānapramukhā dhṛticchidaḥ || 14|| karuṇāmaruṇā'nujanmanastanumuccairiva pakṣapātinīm | samupaimi dhṛtācyutaśriyaṃ śaraṇaṃ bhūdharaputrikāpateḥ || 15|| sphuritāruṇacārucakṣuṣā vapuṣā nirbharagharmavipruṣā | paruṣāśayatāmupeyuṣā saruṣā yatpraharanti yoṣitaḥ || 16|| bhagavan dṛḍhabaddhamūlayordviṣatoreṣa sahasraśākhayoḥ | aviṣahyanipātapīḍayoranubhāvaḥ kusumeṣuroṣayoḥ || 17|| anayoḥ karuṇaiva tāvakī niyataṃ mūlanikṛntanakṣamā | yamalā'rjunayorivorjitā śiśulīlā narakāntakāriṇaḥ || 18|| na vidhirnidhilābhasambhṛto na vinodo mṛganābhisambhavaḥ | na ca śāradacandracandrikā na kalaṃ kokilakaṇṭhakūjitam || 19|| na śiśorasamañjasaṃ vaco na mṛgākṣīparirambhavibhramaḥ | madhurā na kavīndrabhāratī na ca sāmrājyavibhūtijṛmbhitam || 20|| na rasāyanapānakautukaṃ na ca śakrāsanavāsavāsanā | paripūrayituṃ kṣameta te karuṇāyā hara ṣoḍaśīṃ kalām || 21|| surabhirna mama spṛhāspadaṃ surabhirdakṣiṇamāruto'pi vā | surabhikṣuvitīrṇavāñchitā surabhirno karuṇā yathā tava || 22|| samudeti yadaśru śokajaṃ rucirānandamayaṃ vibhāti tat | pulakaḥ prathate bhayena yaḥ sa camatkārakṛtaḥ pravartate || 23|| klamajaṃ dṛśi yannimīlanaṃ paramārthānubhavādudeti tat | śaraṇaṃ karuṇāmupeyuṣāṃ kṛtināṃ candrakirīṭa tāvakīm || 24|| bhajataḥ saraleva bhāratī narakaṅkālakṛtagrahasya me | karuṇā prathatāmumāpate kalikālāñchitavigrahasya te || 25|| bhagavan madirāmadonmadapramadāpāṅgataraṅgabhaṅguram | jarasā tarasāvasāditaṃ vapurāyāti na yāvadāpadam || 26|| kupitāntakakiṅkareritaḥ kuṭilāṃ tadbhrukuṭiṃ viḍambayan | na ghanāñjanapuñjasannibho bhujago yāvadupaiti kandharām || 27|| na kukarmavipākakalpitā narake yāvadudeti vedanā | gaditā śamanānugāmibhiḥ paruṣā gīriva marmabhedinī || 28|| yadi tāvadiyaṃ na gāhate hṛdayaṃ te karuṇātaraṅgiṇī | bata duḥsahatāpasampadāmitarā kā śaraṇārthināṃ gatiḥ || 29|| na samānasamāgamāṃ tathā pramadāya pramadā yatātmanām | śivadā śivadāsyakṛdyathā svadamānasvadamā'naghā matiḥ || 30|| ekaḥ purandarapuraṃ daravellitabhrūḥ kiṃsvijjanaṅgamajanaṃ gamayenmaharṣiḥ | kiṃ tāmasaṃ padamasampadamindramanyo dhanyodayā bhava dayā bhavato na cetsyāt || 31|| ārdre manasyuditamārtajanopatāpa- samparkato'tha dṛśi kandalitaṃ śubhāyām | vāci kṣaṇātkusumitaṃ phalitaṃ ca kṛtye kāruṇyabījamajaraṃ jayatīndumauleḥ || 32|| rogairugrairakhilavigalatsauṣṭhavo naṣṭaceṣṭaḥ paryastāṅgo'śucini śayane bhagnasarvābhyupāyaḥ | yāvajjīvaṃ vihitamahitaṃ karma kartavyamūḍhaḥ smṛtvā smṛtvā dalitahṛdayaḥ kātaraḥ kāndiśīkaḥ || 33|| tarṣotkarṣātkaluṣaparuṣaiḥ karmabhiḥ śarmahṛdbhi- ryatsamprāptaṃ kathamapi(kṛśamapi)bhṛśaṃ kleśayitvā śarīram | rikthagrāhairdraviṇamakhilaṃ luṇṭhyamānaṃ tadagre paśyannaśyatsakalakaraṇo dahyamānaḥ śucāntaḥ(śucārttaḥ)|| 34|| śokodrekādaviralagaladbāṣpapūrṇekṣaṇābhiḥ satpatnībhiścakitacakitaṃ(cakitaiḥ)locanairīkṣyamāṇaḥ | putrairmitraiḥ sahajasacivairbandhubhirbhṛtyavargai- rākrandadbhiḥ karuṇakaruṇaiḥ pīḍyamānaḥ pralāpaiḥ || 35|| svasthāvasthairbhṛśamaśucitāśaṅkibhirveśmagarbhā- dantarlīnasmṛtirapi haṭhānniṣṭhuraiḥ kṛṣyamāṇaḥ | yasminkāle kavalitavapurmṛtyunā'bhyeti bhītiṃ tatra trātā ka iva karuṇāmaiśvarīmantareṇa || 36|| vapuḥkhaṇḍe khaṇḍaḥ prativasati śailendraduhituḥ śikhaṇḍe khaṇḍenduḥ svayamapi vibhuḥ khaṇḍaparaśuḥ | tathāpi pratyagraṃ śaraṇamupayātaṃ prati vibho- rakhaṇḍo vyāpāro jagati karuṇāyā vijayate || 37|| jaya jitāmaya jaya sudhāmaya jaya dhṛtāmṛtadīdhite jaya hatāndhaka jaya purāntaka jaya kṛtāntakasaṃhṛte | jaya parāpara jaya dayāpara jaya natā'rpitasadgate jaya jitasmara jaya maheśvara jaya jaya trijagatpate || 38|| sthānā'sthānaniyantraṇāvirahito nirheturaprārthitaḥ satyaṃ sattvahitārtha eva taraṇerambhobhṛtaścodyamaḥ | tṛṣṇātāpaśamakṣamastu na ravirna dhvāntaśītāntakṛ- nmeghaḥ sa tvakhilārtihṛdvijayate māheśvaro'nugrahaḥ || 39|| bahunā kimatra karuṇāmumāpateḥ sudaśāvatārakṛtamūrjitaśriyam | bhajatā'niruddhahṛdayepsitāgamapravaṇāṃ vibhūtimiva kaiṭabhadviṣaḥ || 40|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``karuṇārādhanaṃ'' nāmakaṃ pañcadaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 16. upadeśanaṃ ṣoḍaśaṃ stotram vṛṣalakṣmaṇaḥ praṇatalokabandhavaḥ kalitālikaskhalitasiddhasindhavaḥ | dyutibhirjayanti tulitoditendavaścaraṇāravindamakarandabindavaḥ || 1|| amalaiḥ phalairaviralairalaṅkṛtā haritā'ruṇapraṇataśāliśālinī | pratibhāti jīrṇatṛṇavattava stavaṃ vasudhā sudhādyutivataṃsa śaṃsataḥm || 2|| timiraṃ cirantanamananta santataglapitāvalokamavalokanārthinaḥ | sṛjatā'mṛtaṃ daśasu dikṣu cakṣuṣākalikālakalmaṣamuṣāmuṣāṇa me || 3|| vahatā hatāndhatamasāmasāditāṃ dyutibhiḥ kalāmavikalāṃ kalāvataḥ | diśatā prakāśaviśadāśamāśayaṃ vapuṣā śivaṃ śivapuṣā puṣāṇa me || 4|| ghanagharmalaṅghitakapolabhittayaḥ śvasitānubandhavidhurīkṛtādharāḥ | dhanināṃ puraḥ prakaṭayanti durgatiṃ dyutihīnadīnavadanā dhanārthinaḥ || 5|| tadanantaraṃ taralitākṣarāṃ giraṃ cirasambhṛtapramadasādagadgadām | vihitāvahelajagatīpatīkṣitāstrapayāpayāpitamukhāḥ prayuñjate || 6|| avadhīryamāṇamatha dīrghamatsarairavabodhavandhyahṛdayairanādṛtam | guṇakauśalaṃ śalabhajṛmbhitopamaṃ prathayanti yānti ca paraṃ parābhavam || 7|| iti dīrghadurbharakuṭumbaḍambarā dhanasaṅgrahagrahagṛhītacetasaḥ | sudhiyo'pi yānti nibiḍaṃ viḍambanaṃ vanavāsibhiḥprahasitapravṛttayaḥ || 8|| kṛtinaḥ punarmṛdumṛdaṅgamaṅgala- svanasannibhadhvanitanirjharormiṣu | kṛtavṛttayaḥ sulabhaśādvalāvalī- valitasthaleṣu (lalitasthalīṣu)tuhinādrisānuṣu || 9|| surasindhurodhasi gṛhītaketakī- calitā(dalita)ṅgulīkisalayena pāṇinā | vividhāṃ vidhāya vidhinā pinākinaḥ karuṇārṇavasya caraṇābjasatkriyām || 10|| hariṇaiḥ kuśāgrakavalābhilāṣibhi- rbharaṇārthibhiśca kalaviṅkaśāvakaiḥ | atithībhavadbhirahatāhnikakriyāḥ phalamūlakalpitaśarīravṛttayaḥ || 11|| divasāvasānasamaye saranmaru- tparikīrṇajīrṇatṛṇaparṇamarmarāḥ | tanujāhnavīsalilaśīkarotkaraiḥ śiśirāḥ śivāya (cirāya)caritā vanasthalīḥ || 12|| dhavalīkṛtāsvamalabhānubhānubhi- rjvalitauṣadhīṣu rajanīṣvanantaram | kalakaṇṭhakaṇṭhakuharodgatasvara- svarasārpitaśrutisukhāsu śerate || 13|| iti bibhrataḥ parikaraṃ priyaṅkaraṃ harapādapaṅkajarajaḥprasādajam | vihasanti mūḍhamanasāṃ mahībhujāṃ gajakarṇatālataralāśrayāḥ śriyaḥ || 14|| dadhaduddhataṃ hara puraḥ purandhribhiḥ prabalaṃ balaṃ galadapāṅgabhaṅgibhiḥ | hṛdayaṃ bhinatti mama ghasmaraḥ smaraḥ śarapātakātaradṛśo bhṛśaṃ kṛśam || 15|| janayannayaṃ nayanayoradhīratāṃ bhramayanbhruvaṃ bhṛśamadabhrasambhramām | ślathayanprayatnakṛtasaṅgamaṃ śamaṃ hasanīyatāṃ nayati roṣa īśa mām || 16|| dhanalābhasambhratavilāsavāsanāvyathamānamānasamasatyasaṅgaram | na viśobhilobhavivaśaṃ spṛśanti māṃ suhṛdo'pi kopitakadarthitārthinam || 17|| ucitatrivargarahitaṃ tirohitaṃ ghanamohamūḍhamanasaṃ hasanti mām | kṛtamedhasāmadhisadaḥ sadaḥsadaḥ sadasadvivekavikalaṃ kalaṅkitam || 18|| iti tarjayanti ripavaḥ sudurjayāḥ parivarjayanti ca viśuddhabuddhayaḥ | na punarjayanti vidhuraṃ yathā tathā kuru he maheśa dṛśamehi dehi naḥ || 19|| kva maheśvarasmaraṇasambhavaṃ bhava- bhramabhīmagharmaśamasammukhaṃ sukham | vipadāṃ padaṃ mṛdumṛṇālinīdala- skhaladambubindutaralāḥ kva sampadaḥ || 20|| kva śiveśvareti kṛtagaṇḍamaṇḍalī pulakodgamapramadamantharā giraḥ | kva yathārthapārthivanirarthakā'nṛta- stutivistarairapathapātapātakam || 21|| kva samādhibādhitadurādhisādhimā bhavasambhavaśramadamakṣamaḥ śamaḥ | kva madaḥ pradarśitasamagravigrahaḥ prahasanmanasvijanagarhitasthitiḥ || 22|| iti māmanargalamamārgamārgaṇa- pravaṇāvivekavikalīkṛtāśayam | karuṇānidhāna paribodhaya kṣaṇaṃ kṣaṇadāviśeṣakaśikhāśikhāmaṇe || 23|| pramadā madāruṇadṛśaḥ kṛśodarāstanayā nayānatasamastamastakāḥ | suhṛdo hṛdantaragateṅgitaspṛśaḥ praṇayārdranirbharagiraśca bandhavaḥ || 24|| dadhataḥ prasādamadhurāṃ dhurāmapi prabhavo'mṛtadravasamānamānasāḥ | mukhavīkṣaṇapraṇayinaḥ pratikṣaṇaṃ paricārakāśca jayajīvavādinaḥ || 25|| na bhayaṃ bhayaṅkarakṛtāntakiṅkarabhrukuṭībhavaṃ jhaṭiti hantumīśate | bhajatāmataḥ kṣapayadāpadaṃ padaṃ hṛdaye dayāmṛtanidhe nidhehi naḥ || 26|| hantā'hantā prathayati matihrāsamāsañjayantī māyāmāyāsitasitaśamā yāminī yāminīva | tasmādasmānraviśaśiśikhipreṅkhitoddāmadhāma kṣiptvā cakṣurmuditamuditā'vandhyabodhānvidhehi || 27|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``upadeśanaṃ'' nāmakaṃ ṣoḍaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 17. bhaktistotraṃ saptadaśaṃ stotram mandaspande manasi rasikībhāvamāsādya sadyo hṛdyodyogā vihara varade bhārati svāratiste | mātarjātaspṛhamiva mahāmohanidrāvasāne janīhīmaṃ janamanalasaṃ śaṃsituṃ śambhubhaktim || 1|| drākṣā sākṣādamṛtalaharī karkaśātkāṣṭhakoṣā- dbhūricchidrātprakṛtimadhurā mūrcchanā vaṃśagarbhāt | sūktivyājānmama ca vadanātkarṇapeyā sudheyaṃ nirgacchantī janayati na kaṃ vismayasmeravaktram || 2|| dhyātvā deva pramayasamayatrāsamāsannakalpaṃ svalpaṃ jñātvā sulabhaśalabhacchāyasacchāyamāyuḥ | mattvā ca tvā sadayahṛdayaṃ bhaktivāllabhyalabhyaṃ sabhyammanyāstava navavidhau dhautacittā yatante || 3|| kaṇṭhe kaṇṭhīravaravasadṛgdṛksamudgodgatāśro- rhelonmīladvipulapulakodbhṛtabhūteśabhakteḥ | yasyodeti dhvaniranibhṛtaḥ śarvaśarvetyakharvaṃ garvaṃ bibhraddhasati vasatiṃ vāsavīyāṃ sa ekaḥ || 4|| tanmānuṣyaṃ prabhavati satāmuttamā yatra jātiḥ saikā jātiḥ prasarati yaśo yatra pāṇḍityahetu | tatpāṇḍityaṃ sarasamadhurā jṛmbhate yatra vāṇī vāṇī sāpi prathayati ratiṃ śāṅkarī yatra bhaktiḥ || 5|| yeṣāṃ vaktre samadamuditatvaccaritrāḥ pavitrā dvitrā vitrāsitaravisutabhrūvibhaṅgaprasaṅgāḥ | nojjṛmbhante madhukaṇamucaḥ sūktayo bhaktisiktā dhiktānriktānbhuvi bhava bhavatpādasevārasena || 6|| nātha jyotsnā bahularajanau kārtikīyeva kāntā kāntārāntarmathitapathikaprauḍhatāpā prapeva | mā mā bhaiṣīriti yamabhaye tāvakīneva vāṇī bhāvatkī me satatamamṛtasyandinī bhāti bhaktiḥ || 7|| yeṣāmantaḥ sukṛtasaraṇiḥ sthāṇavīyā na bhakti- rvyaktiṃ dhatte rasakṛdasakṛnnāsmi teṣu smiteṣu | lokaḥ śokaṃ tyajati sahasā yatra tadbhaktiyuktaṃ yuktaṃ manye ruditamuditaślāghamullāghahetum || 8|| dhvāntaṃ śāntapraśamamaharadyanna sadyaḥ samudya- nnudyotaśrīkalitakamalollāsabhānuḥ sa bhānuḥ | tadvidhvastapramadamadamoddīpitoddāmadoṣa- ploṣaṃ netuṃ prabhavati bhave śāmbhavī bhaktireva || 9|| ye santoṣapraśamapiśune kleśarāśau nimagnā bhagnāśābhirviṣamaviṣayopāsanāvāsanābhiḥ | teṣāmeṣā bhavabhayabhidārambhasambhāvanābhū- rbhūtyai bhūyastrijagati gatiḥ śāmbhavī bhaktireva || 10|| dambhastambhasthagitagatayaḥ sāvahelāmahelā- helālāpabhramitamatayaḥ santyasaṅkhyāḥ pumāṃsaḥ | bhārgīṃ bhaktiṃ dadhati hṛdaye nistaraṅgāmabhaṅgāṃ gaṅgātīre vihitaratayo durlabhāḥ pūruṣāste || 11|| śambho dambho dahati kuhakārambhasambhāvanābhiḥ sābhidveṣastviṣamapakaṣatyeṣa roṣapradoṣaḥ | sāvaṣṭambhaṃ bhramayati bṛhanmāmahaṅkārabhāraḥ pāraṃ netuṃ prabhavati bhavadbhaktirekā bhavābdheḥ || 12|| drāksandhatte yudhamadhidhanurbaddhabāṇābhirāmaiḥ sabhrūbhaṅgairlaṭabhalalanāpāṅgabhaṅgairanaṅgaḥ | doṣaploṣakṣamaśamapathāpātamātanvatī me bhīme bhaktirbhagavati gatiścakṣuṣaścandrikeva || 13|| kāmaḥ kāmaṃ dhanuranuniśaṃ kausumaṃ saṃvṛṇotu vyālaṃ kālaḥ svakarakuhare bhagnabhogaṃ vidhattām | bhārgī bhaktiḥ sapadi sakalaprārthanākalpavallī labdhā dṛbdhā jagati kati na kleśapāśā hatāśāḥ || 14|| rājñāmājñāvihativihitānīkinīnīrasaśrīḥ sa śrīleśastanuranucitaprārthanastāvadāstām | aindraṃ yatra tribhuvanajayaprājyasāmrājyalakṣmī- lakṣmāvajñāspadamapi padaṃ tāṃ stumaḥ śambhubhaktim || 15|| kāntaikāntavyasanamanasāṃ valkalālaṅkṛtānāṃ jñānāmbhobhiḥ kṣapitarajasāṃ jāhnavītīrabhājām | gāḍhotsekaprakaṭitajaṭāmaṇḍalīmaṇḍanānāṃ nānākārā bhavati kṛtināṃ muktaye bhargabhaktiḥ || 16|| mūrtirdhūtiṃ prathayati yathā mañjarī jīrṇaparṇā karṇābhyarṇaṃ prasarati jarā satyato mṛtyudūtī | bhogā bhogā iva vidadhataśceṣṭitaṃ veṣṭayante hantedānīṃ śaraṇamaparaṃ nāsti naḥ śambhubhakteḥ || 17|| yatra dhvāntakṣapaṇanipuṇaṃ durbalaṃ dhāma cāndraṃ sāndraṃ yatra glapayati tamastāpano yanna tāpaḥ | yatra preṅkhanna kacati śikhī tejasā'nyena satrā tatrālokaṃ diśati viṣame śāmbhavī bhaktirekā || 18|| mā bhūdbhūyo'bhyasanasulabhānvīkṣikī nāma vidyā hṛdyā dūre viharatu vipatkhaṇḍinī daṇḍanītiḥ | kvāpi sthemnā lasatu kalitollāghavārtāpi vārtā nārtāvarhaṃ kimapi śaraṇaṃ śambhubhaktiṃ vinā'nyat || 19|| saṃsārābdheḥ prathamalaharī pātakāpātakāmā rāmā nāma sthagayati gatiṃ majjatāṃ sajjanānām | mohāvarttabhramasamudayatkhedavicchedahetuḥ seturdūrībhavati ca bhṛśaṃ śemuṣī śemuṣīyam || 20|| tasmādasmājjananamaraṇakleśaveśantapaṅkā- cchaṅkātaṅkākulitamatayo ye titīrṣanti teṣām | āśāpāśagrathitavapuṣāṃ krandatāmāturāṇāṃ prāṇāpāte vitarati karālambanaṃ śambhubhaktiḥ || 21|| eṇākṣīṇāṃ smaraśaraśikhākoṭiśauṭīryabhīmāḥ premākṛṣṭā jhagiti kuṭilā ye kaṭākṣāḥ patanti | kālenaite kuliśaniśitāstuṇḍadaṇḍā jaḍānāṃ bhindantyantarhṛdayamadayaṃ patriṇāṃ nārakāṇām || 22|| bāhudvandvaṃ tulitavivaladbālamārṇālanālaṃ sālaṅkāraṃ raṇitavalayaṃ veṣṭitaṃ kaṇṭhapīṭhe | mohāndhānāṃ mahati patatāṃ yātanātaṅkapaṅke śaṅke paṅkeruhadaladṛśaḥ pāśatāmetadeti || 23|| yatsākūtaṃ mukulitadṛśaḥ ketakāmodahṛdyaṃ sadyaḥ svidyadvadanamamṛtasyandi pītaṃ natāṅgyāḥ | rāgāndhānāṃ nirayanilaye taddurāpāvasāne jāne bhūyaḥ patanaśapathākrośakoṣatvameti || 24|| rāgodrekātkanakakalaśākāramālambi hāraṃ sāraṅgākṣyāḥ pṛthukucayugaṃ gāḍhamāliṅgitaṃ yat | tanmūḍhānāṃ narakakalile majjatāmantakāle nāle lagnasthirataragurugrāvabhāvaṃ bibharti || 25|| kiṃ bhūyobhirvacanaracanāḍambarairdīrghaśokā lokā yuktaṃ śa‍ṛṇuta sutarāṃ paścimaṃ vākyametat | duḥkhodarkaṃ pramukhasukhadaṃ saṅgamutsṛjya sāṅgaṃ gāṅgaṃ labdhvā salilamamalaṃ śambhubhaktiṃ bhajadhvam || 26|| trailokyaṃ lambhayantastṛṇagaṇagaṇanāṃ rohiṇīkāntalekhā- rekhālaṅkārabhaktipramuditamanaso nirmalaṃ dhāma labdhum | dhanyāḥ saṃnyāsino'ntaḥ kalimalapaṭalaṃ bhūri bhindantyamandā mandākinyāḥ payobhiḥ śaśimukuṭajaṭāvaijayantīdukūlaiḥ || 27|| evaṃ deva prabheva smarahara sakaladvīpadīpasya bharttu- rbhāsāmāsādayantī viṣamatamatamaḥkhaṇḍane caṇḍimānam | kārāgārānukāre paribhavati bhave baddhamohāndhakāre- bhāvatkī bhaktirekā śaraṇamaśaraṇatrāṇaviśrāṇinī naḥ || 28|| ye viśvasthitisargasaṃhṛtikṛto devāstrayaste'pi yaṃ sevante mukhavīkṣaṇapraṇayino dṛkpātamātrārthinaḥ | yasyāḥ sa prabhuraprameyamahimā krīḍāśakuntāyate tāṃ bhaktiṃ bhuvanatrayādbhutamahāmāhātmyaśaktiṃ stumaḥ || 29|| gāvastāvadduhānā rasamasamasudhāsodarāsvādabandhuṃ bhaktirbhargenisargaklamaśamanacamatkārabhogaikabhūmiḥ | tṛptiḥ svātmāvabhāsādanupamaparamānandaniḥsyandasaṃvi- dviśrāntyekāntahetoritisapadi vipatkiṅkarī kiṅkarotu || 30|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``bhaktistotraṃ'' nāma saptadaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 18. siddhistotraṃ aṣṭādaśaṃ stotram jayati jitavikāraḥ kḷptalokopakāraḥ kṛtavipadapakāraḥ śāntamohāndhakāraḥ | atulapuruṣakāraḥ prāptaviśvādhikāraḥ smararacitanikāraḥ pārvatīcāṭukāraḥ || 1|| atanumatanutāmuṃ prāṇināṃ pūrṇaśakti- stanubhuvanagaṇaṃ yaḥ śarmadaḥ karmabhuktyai | diśamadiśadaśaṅkāṃ śāstrarūpāṃ ca muktyai sa bhavatu bhavadoṣaploṣakṛdvo maheśaḥ || 2|| analasahitavṛttau satkalābhāsaśuddhe budhavaramukhapadme bhāratī nirmalormiḥ | varada paramatāpakleśajittvatprasādāt prabhavati bhavadīye mūrdhani svardhunīva || 3|| bhava bhavamarucāraśrāntasantāpatānti- praśamanaghanavarṣāvārivāhaṃ tavāham | namadamarakirīṭaprotaratnāṃśupūra- sphuradurusuracāpaṃ pādapīṭhaṃ prapadye || 4|| karakalitakapolā bālaśaivālaśayyā- talalulitamṛṇālīpelavamlānamūrtiḥ | ciravirahavinidrā rudradṛkpātapātraṃ diśi diśi niśi paśyatyaṅganānaṅgabhīruḥ || 5|| haracaraṇasarojadvandvabhaktiprasādā- dupari karivarāṇāṃ sañcarantaḥ sahelam | ghanamadabharaniryannirbharāmodalobha- skhaladalikulagītaṃ sphītamākarṇayanti || 6|| caraṇakamalayugmaṃ deva nirdambhabhakti- grahapulakitadehastāvakaṃ yo nanāma | adhivasati sa sevānamrasāmantamauli- skhalitabakulamālālālitaṃ pādapīṭham || 7|| śaśiśakalaśikhaṇḍa tvatprasādena dhanyāḥ sitakaradhavalābhyāṃ cāmarābhyāṃ vibhānti | ubhayata iva vaktraṃ bhāvirudratvalābha- prakaṭanapiśunābhyāṃ svarṇadīnirjharābhyām || 8|| kṣitidharapatiputrīvallabha tvatprasādā- ddadhati jagati dhanyā mūrdhni dhautātapatram | ghaṭayitumadhikatvaṃ svātmano'pi tvayaita- tsakalamiva vitīrṇaṃ maṇḍalaṃ śītaraśmeḥ || 9|| ayi hṛdaya dayārdraḥ svardhunīnīradhārī tvayi viharati hastanyastapīyūṣakumbhaḥ | yadi himakaralekhāśekharaḥ ko'paraste bhavadavavinivṛttau śaṃsa śītopacāraḥ || 10|| suravaranutadhairyā vairidurvāravīryā jagati vividhaśāstraprastutācāryacaryāḥ | dadhati bhuvanatantraṃ koṭiśo rudravaryāḥ kṛtasatatasaparyā ye purā śaṅkarasya || 11|| giri girivarakanyākānta śāntaprathāyāṃ karacaraṇagaṇe'pi kṣāmatāmaśnuvāne | galagaladavakāśe vāpi kīnāśapāśe bhava bhavati vinā tvāṃ prāṇināṃ trāṇakṛtkaḥ || 12|| śayaśayananiviṣṭaṃ vaktramāpāṇḍugaṇḍaṃ matimativiraheṇa glānibhājaṃ vahantī | tanutanulatikārtiṃ māninī vyāharantī hara harati na dhairyaṃ tvatsamādhau budhānām || 13|| daladalaghuvivekaṃ vyaktaśokātirekaṃ viśa viśadamananta svāntamantaḥ praśāntam | bhava bhava bhavadāhadhvaṃsavarṣāmbuvāhaḥ kalikalitarujānāṃ saprajānāṃ prajānām || 14|| dahadahatamamoghaṃ pāpmanāṃ dīrghamoghaṃ ruciruciramamandaṃ sundarānandakandam | diśa diśadupadeśaṃ nāśitakleśaleśaṃ madhumadhuramudāraṃ vākyapīyūṣasāram || 15|| sarati saratirantarghasmaro māravīra- ścalati ca latikeva sphītabhītirmanīṣā | tamahitamahimānaṃ nātha nikṣipya cakṣuḥ śamaya śamayameti prītimānyena lokaḥ || 16|| jaghanajaghanaśobhā spardhamānā sabhṛṅgaṃ kamalakamalakāntakrāntabhāsā mukhena | muditamuditarāgā sevate deva rāmā madanamadanavīnaistvatprapannaṃ vilāsaiḥ || 17|| janitajanitaraṅgaṃ jṛmbhayantī bhavābdhiṃ kalitakalitamisrā nātha kādambinīva | harati hara titikṣonmāthinī mohamūrcchā mahitamahitavṛddhiḥ śuddhabodhaprakāśam || 18|| bhajati bhaja tiraścīṃ dṛṣṭimiṣṭaprasādāṃ kṛtasukṛtasumedhaḥpraidhitābhīṣṭasiddhim | tirayati rayamīśa vyāpadāṃ duḥsahānāṃ śamanaśamanadakṣaṃ tvāṃ vinā nātha ko'nyaḥ || 19|| samarasamarajobhiḥ svāntamantarvahadbhi- rhitavihitaviyogaṃ mohamāhantukāmaiḥ | bhavavibhavavimuktairyogibhiryo'bhyupeta- stamahatamahanīyaślāghamīśaṃ prapadye || 20|| akalitamahimānaṃ dhvastamithyābhimānaṃ dadadamṛtasamānaṃ bodhamābhāsamānam | prakaṭitalaghimānaṃ durvahaṃ vardhamānaṃ bhavabhavamavabhānaṃ bhinddhi me bādhamānam || 21|| kimiva maṇibhiḥ kiṃ vā mantraiḥ kimauṣadhisaṅgrahai- riha bahuvidhaiḥ kiṃ vā kāryaṃ parairapi bheṣajaiḥ | amṛtamapi na prāyaḥ pāpopatāpaśamakṣamaṃ vrajata śaraṇaṃ tasmādekaṃ haraṃ karuṇāparam || 22|| iha hi giriṣu prāleyādrirmahaḥsu vibhāvasu- rguruṣu jananī mantreṣvekākṣaraṃ paramaṃ padam | sakhiṣu sukṛtaṃ vairiṣvaṃho nadīṣu nabhonadī prabhuṣu ca paraḥ svāmī devaḥ śaśāṅkaśikhāmaṇiḥ || 23|| na yāvadavahīyate dhṛtidhurā jarāviplavai- rna jīryati sarasvatī na ca viśīryate śemuṣī | na cāmayabhujaṅgamairavaśamaṅgamāliṅgyate bhajadhvamajaraṃ vibhuṃ bhavajayāya tāvadbudhāḥ || 24|| arāṇi karuṇaṃ muhurmuhurakāri cāṭu prabho- rabhāvi bhavabhāvanāmuditacetasāntarmuhuḥ | aloṭhi mukuṭaṃ muhuścaraṇapīṭhikāviṣṭare kimanyadakhilaṃ jitaṃ karatale kṛtāḥ siddhayaḥ || 25|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``siddhistotraṃ'' nāmāṣṭādaśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 19. bhagavadrūpavarṇanaṃ ekonaviṃśaṃ stotram yatte paraṃ varada rūpamatītameva mārgaṃ girāṃ tadiha kaḥ kṣamate gṛṇātum | agrāhi yattu natalokamanugrahītuṃ bālendulakṣma bhavatā tadidaṃ gṛṇāmi || 1|| āstāṃ paraṃ yadaparaṃ tadapi svakīyaṃ divyaṃ vapurnahi maheśa vimarśayogyam | yatkiñcideva tu vikalpavikalpyamāna- mānandadhāma tadapīha bhavārtibhājām (bhavārdditānām)|| 2|| mūrttirdhruvaṃ tava śivāmṛtavartirenā- māsādya yatkaticidaśrulavāḥ patanti | naśyatyaghaughapaṭalaṃ timiraṃ vyapaiti rāgaḥ praśāmyati dṛśaḥ prathate prasādaḥ || 3|| satyaṃ mahārghaguṇaratna nidhānameta- dālambanaṃ tava vapurvipadarditānām | no cennakhāṃśubharakesaritaṃ kimatra pādābhidhaṃ yugapadudgatamabjayugmam || 4|| pādadvayaṃ tava bhava praṇatiprakarṣa- harṣāśrubindubharadanturitāṅgulīkam | nīhāraśīkarapariṣkṛtapatrapaṅkti- paṅkeruhadvitayakānti bhajanti dhanyāḥ || 5|| bhasmojjvalaṃ tridaśaśekharapadmarāga- dīpraprabhāruṇitamaṅghrisarojayugmam | vandāmahe ghusṛṇareṇuparāgagarbha- karpūrapāṃsubhirivacchuritaṃ smarāreḥ || 6|| jaṅghālatāyugalamāśritagulphamūla- bhogīndrabhogasubhagābhinavālavālam | śambhorabhīṣṭaphaladaṃ bhavatāpatānti- śāntikṣamaṃ śamayituṃ vipadaṃ śrayāmi || 7|| vande yugāntasamayoṣitasaptalokaṃ lokottaraṃ jaṭharamīśvarabhairavasya | yatraiti nābhikuharaṃ jagadādisarga- niryajjanaughanavanirgamamārgabhaṅgim || 8|| sindūritā'maramataṅgajakumbhaśobhi sandhyābhitāmraśaradambudharānukāri | vande phaṇīndraphaṇaratnarucāruṇābhaṃ bhasmaughabhāsvaramuraḥ pura(smara)śāsanasya || 9|| svāminnamī tava bhujā bhujagādhirāja- bhogopagūḍhavapuṣo hṛdayaṃ madīyam | ānandayanti bata bhīmabhavopatāpa- nirvāpaṇena viṭapā iva candanasya || 10|| madhyasthiterubhayapārśvagatā cakāsti hastasya meruparimarśavinākṛteyam | avyāhatagrahavaśāhitayogasiddhi- rnakṣatrapaṅktiriva deva tavā'kṣamālā || 11|| tvaṃ kālabhairavavapurjvalitā'nalāśri lolāṅgulīvalanamaṇḍalitaṃ dadhānaḥ | saṃhārarātriṣu ninartiṣurīśa śūlaṃ bālārkacumbitanavāmbudabhaṅgimeṣi || 12|| śāṇopalotkaṣaṇaśuddhanavendranīla- nīladyutirjayati te śitikaṇṭha kaṇṭhaḥ | yasminghanāñjanarucirbhujagaḥ kalinda- kanyāhṛdāntaritakāliyabhaṅgimeti || 13|| kaṇṭho vahannapi viṣaṃ viṣamaṃ tavaiṣaḥ sadyaḥ śriyaṃ sṛjati yadvacasāśriteṣu | svāminnatastribhuvanaprathitapratiṣṭhaṃ śrīkaṇṭha ityucitameva tavābhidhānam || 14|| antarvimṛśya garalena gale salīla- māliṅgitaṃ vimalamānanamindumauleḥ | hṛṣyāmi hanta muhuramburuhabhramāpta- rolambaḍambaraviḍambanapaṇḍitena || 15|| yadvadviṣaṃ sadamṛtaṃ śirasi prasiddha- mambhastaveśa viśadaṃ sumanaḥsravantyāḥ | manye tathaiva bhagavan bhavato galasthaṃ sampadyate'mṛtamidaṃ natasāntvaneṣu || 16|| tadyuktamīśa vadanādbhavataḥ sudhāccha- kānteryadagnirapatadvapuṣi smarasya | yo laṅghanaṃ tribhuvanaikagurorvidhitsu- rulkā na kiṃ patati candramaso'pi tasya || 17|| diṣṭyā viruddhajanatā damayantyapīyaṃ dṛṣṭistaveśvara bibhartyanalāśritatvam | diṣṭyā vanaikaratirapyavanaikasakti- rekastvamadbhutanidhe bhagavannamaste || 18|| dhanyasya yasya vapuṣi glapite tapobhiḥ svāmin patanti viṣamāṇi tavekṣaṇāni | muṣṇanti mugdhamṛgaśāvadṛśāṃ na dhairya- sarvasvamasya viṣamāṇi vilocanāni || 19|| satyeva dṛgvilasite karuṇāmṛtaugha- śīte jarāmaraṇahāriṇi tāvakīne | nātha vyadhāyi vibudhairabudhairmudhaiva dugdhodadhipramathane'navadhiḥ prayāsaḥ || 20|| śvete'mṛtaṃ yadasṛjadravije ca vahni- mekaiva dṛktava tayoḥ sa nijaḥ prabhāvaḥ | ikṣau sudhā viṣamuṣāṇaphale ca sārdhaṃ yadvardhate kimaparādhyati tatra vṛṣṭiḥ || 21|| nūnaṃ payodhimathanāvasare pareśa pītaṃ tvayā tadamṛtaṃ na tu kālakūṭam | adyāpi yadvasati te vacanakrame ca dṛgvibhrame ca taruṇe karuṇārase ca || 22|| satyaṃ prasādasamaye capalatvameti dhatte'dhikaṃ ca kuṭilatvamiyaṃ tava bhrūḥ | etāṃ vinā punaranargalakālapāśa- pāte parāsti na gatirbhayavihvalānām || 23|| āpūritaḥ surasaritpayasā'mṛtāya jūṭaḥ prataptatapanīyapiśaṅgakāntiḥ | svāminnasau tava navātapatāmravelā- śailopagūḍha iva dugdhanidhirna kasya || 24|| svāminsudhāvadavadātarucistaveya- mābhāti hanta mukuṭe nṛkapālamālā | jūṭāntarālavilasatsurasindhutīra- līlāvihārarasikeva marālamālā || 25|| brahmādibhistava jagadgurubhiḥ śirāṃsi yānyarpitāni parameśvara pādapīṭhe | tānyeva mūrdhani yadābharaṇīkaroṣi sa prauḍhimā jayati ko'pi kṛtajñatāyāḥ || 26|| nirvāṇameti na jalairapi yatra vahni- ryatraiṣa no pacati tāni mahāśikho'pi | māndyaṃ na vindati tamīramaṇaḥ kṛśo'pi tābhyāmasau vijayate śitikaṇṭha jūṭaḥ || 27|| bhālasthale hutavahaṃ vahato jalaṃ ca candraṃ ca mūrdhni vikaṭaṃ ca kapālakhaṇḍam | ekatra muṇḍamaparatra sudhāghaṭaṃ ca haste cakāsti bhavato'dbhuta eṣa veṣaḥ || 28|| dāne nadīnamupakalpayataḥ saharṣa- mākramya gāmanupamāṃ gatimāsthitasya | nāgendrasambhṛtamahākaṭakasya kasya śasyaṃ vinā tvadiha rājaśiromaṇitvam || 29|| kaṇṭhe viṣaṃ viṣabhṛto'pi vibhūṣaṇāni gātreṣu mūrdhani viṣaṃ vibudhasravantyāḥ | itthaṃ viṣaikavasaterapi te cakāsti karṇāmṛtaṃ sukṛtināmamṛteśanāma || 30|| kṣatavibhavaviśeṣāḥ prāṇamātrāvaśeṣā vipadamanubhavāmaḥ karmapāko hi vāmaḥ | tadiha bhujagahāraḥ kḷptamohāpahāraḥ sa bhavati gatirekaḥ kṛttaśokātirekaḥ || 31|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``bhagavadrūpavarṇanaṃ'' nāmaikonaviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 20. hasitastotraṃ viṃśaṃ stotram yatsaubhagena ghanamoghamamoghamegha- saṅghātasambhavamavandhyamadhaḥ karoti | tacchāmbhavaṃ bhavamarubhramakhedabheda- dakṣaṃ vilāsahasitaṃ nutibhirbhajāmaḥ || 1|| yadvāṅmayaṃ sakalavāṅmanasātivṛtta- sīmānamīśa mahimānamamānameyam | asmādṛśaṃ kṛśadṛśaṃ bhṛśamāmṛśanta- mantarvimṛṣya bhavato bhagavannudeti || 2|| yenopamanyumapamanyumananyabhāja- mājanmatṛṣṇajamajasramaja śramārtam | ānandayaḥ svayamadīnanadīnadāna- bhāsvanmahāphalalasatkusumopamena || 3|| yenāpi tāpavipadaṃ prathamaṃ jahartha nātha prasādasubhagena bhagīrathasya | mūrdhnā dhṛtatridaśasindhumahāpravāha- nirvāpaṇena punarasya pitāmahānām || 4|| utprāsanāya śamanasya manasyanalpa- darpodgamapraśamaviklavavikramasya | āśvāsanāya ca samaṃ samabhāvi yena kīnāśapāśavivaśasya nareśvarasya || 5|| bhāvatkabhaktibharasambhṛtabhūribhūti- sambhārarūḍhagurugarvagaladvivekam | mohāndhamandhakamupāhitasāhasikya- hevākamākalayato bhavato yadāsīt || 6|| laṅkeśakampitakuberagiriprarūḍha- saṃrambhabhīrugirijāparirambhabhājaḥ | yatte ruṣāmavasare'pyuditānavadya- hṛdyaprasādasumukhasya samujjagāma || 7|| pūjārthamambujasahasramupāhitaṃ ya- dekaṃ tato hṛtavatastava kaitavena | viṣṇuṃ vilokya nijalocanamutkhananta- mantaḥ prasannamanaso yadamandamāsīt || 8|| dṛṣṭvā vadhūjanamanuttamarūpasampa- tsandarśanodbhavamanobhavabhagnavṛttam | āṣāḍhapāṇiṣu ruṣā muniṣu praharttu- mabhyudyateṣu tava yadbhṛśamudbabhūva || 9|| abhyarṇavartikaragocarakālakūṭa- kūṭaprabhānicayamecakite'dharoṣṭhe | yatpūrvaparvataśikhāśritaśītaraśmi- raśmicchaṭācchaviviḍambi purāvirāsīt || 10|| yatkarṇatālavalanāniladhūtakumbha- sindūrareṇukaṇakūṇitalocanasya | bālasya nāgavadanasya manasyabhīṣṭāṃ dṛṣṭaiva nāṭyaghaṭanāṃ tava sambabhūva || 11|| śailādivāditamṛdaṅgalayānuyāta- nṛttapravṛttaguhavāhavilokanena | svāmin mahāpralayabhairavarūpiṇo ya- dāvirbabhūva tava tāṇḍavaḍambareṣu || 12|| vyoma pracaṇḍabhujadaṇḍavighaṭyamāna- tārāvalīvirahabandhuritāndhakāram | svāmin yugāntasamayābhinayeṣu yena sambhāvyate punarapi pracuraprakāśam || 13|| dikcakravālamukharīkaraṇapragalbha- prāvṛṭpayodharagabhīraravānukāri | svāmin kaṭhorahṛdayasya bhayaṃ vidhātuṃ bhīrośca dātumabhayaṃ yugapatkṣamaṃ yat || 14|| yatkālakūṭakavalīkaraṇaprarūḍha- nīlimni kaṇṭhapuline vimalaṃ nilīnam | nīrandhranīrabharamedurameghakhaṇḍa- lagnendumaṇḍalaviḍambanamātanoti || 15|| dhyāyantyananyahṛdayā hṛdayādhinātha- madya kṣapāmagamayaṃ sakhi kalpakalpām | prāṇeśasaṅgamanimittamatha prabhāte nidrā sakhīva mama sammukhamājagāma || 16|| tasminkṣaṇe nayanavartmani jīviteśaḥ śaṃsan dṛśā madhurayaiva manaḥprasādam | cakre padaṃ mama tamomukulīkṛtāyāḥ svairaṃ sametya saviteva saroruhiṇyāḥ || 17|| asmatkṛte sitamayūkhamukhi tvayai- tatkiṃ prastutaṃ munibhirapyatiduṣkaraṃ yat | udyānacaṅkramaṇakeliṣu khidyate yā sā te kathaṃ kathaya kaṣṭasahā'ṅgayaṣṭiḥ || 18|| mūrtiḥ kva bālakadalīdalakomaleyaṃ tīvraṃ tapaḥ kva manaso'pi na gocaraṃ yat | kveṣadvikāsi kusumaṃ sumanolatāyāḥ kvonmattakuñjarakaṭhorakaropamardaḥ || 19|| etena karkaśakuśagrahaṇaṃ kareṇa soḍhaṃ kathaṃ prathamapallavakomalena | pādau kathaṃ kamalagarbhanibhau śilāśri- śreṇīṣu tīrthagamanaklamamanvabhūtām || 20|| hāropi bhāra iva yatra kucadvayaṃ ta- tsehe kathaṃ kuliśakarkaśavalkalolkām | etatkathaṃ mṛdumṛṇālalatābhijātaṃ pañcāgnitāpavipadaḥ padamaṅgamāsīt || 21|| ityādibhirdaśanacandrikayānuviddhai- rantarbahiśca timiraprasaraṃ haradbhiḥ | āśvāsayanniva nivartitatīvrakhedaṃ garbhīkṛtasmitasudhāmadhurairvacobhiḥ || 22|| yāvattrapāparavaśaṃ kṣitimīkṣamāṇaṃ muktāphalopamasamudgatagharmaleśam | kiñcitkareṇa mukhamunnamayanniyeṣa pīyūṣavarṣamiva varṣitumeṣa bhūyaḥ || 23|| tāvatprabodhitavatā kṛkavākunādai- rdurvedhasā sakhi tadācaritaṃ śaṭhena | yatraiṣa eva śaraṇaṃ mama jīviteśo- yadvā'paro harati yo'khilajantuvargam || 24|| ityādi tīvravirahajvarayā jayāyai yatsvapnavṛttamuditaṃ girirājaputryā | tacchṛṇvato vanalatāntaritasya yatte jātaṃ pramodabharanirbharamānasasya || 25|| sañjīvanauṣadhamidaṃ harahuṅkṛtāgni- jvālāvalīḍhavapuṣaḥ kusumāyudhasya | bāle sudhārasamaye samaye kimartha- māyāsyate tribhuvanābharaṇaṃ śarīram || 26|| kalpadrumairnidhibhiroṣadhikāmadhenu- cintāmaṇiprabhṛtibhiśca pariṣkṛtasya | kiṃ durlabhaṃ tava piturbhuvanātiśāyi- śrīdhāmni dhāmani yadarthayase tapobhiḥ || 27|| tvaṃ jīvitādapi guroradhikā sa tāva- dutpādayettava na manyumadhītanītiḥ | sambhāvyate tava ca nānyakṛto nikāraḥ kurvīta kesarisaṭāhaṭhakarṣaṇaṃ kaḥ || 28|| śraddhānubandhavihitavratahomadāna- svādhyāyatīrthagamanādinibandhanāni | dhanyasya kasya phalitāni tuṣārahāra- gaurāṇi gauri sukṛtāni purākṛtāni || 29|| durvāradurgatinikārakadarthyamāna- mālokya lokamakhilaṃ vipulāśayena | sadyaḥkṛtaṃ kanakavarṣaṇamindukānta- varṣmatviṣā paramakāruṇikena kena || 30|| gāyanti kasya viṣadaṃ viṣamograkāla- saṃruddhaśaktiśaraṇāgatarakṣaṇottham | dvandvāni nandanasadāmapadānamindu- dhautāsu kaumudamahotsavayāminīṣu || 31|| keneśvareṇa mahatā vahatātrinetra- sañjātakānti vapuradbhutabhūtibhūṣam | uddāmakāmaśitamārgaṇadaurmanasya- vairasyamiddhamahasā sahasā nirastam || 32|| dhanyāḥ kamaskhalitapauruṣabhagnabhūri- darpāndhakandalitalokaviṣādamuccaiḥ | helāvalīḍhaviṣamaśramavīryavahni- bhasmīkṛtāhitapuraṃ kavayaḥ stuvanti || 33|| kaḥ svardhunīsavanavahniniṣevaṇādi- dhautāṃ dadhattanumanujjhitabhaikṣavṛttiḥ | kālaṃ dvijendramukuṭaḥ pariśuddhadharma- caryārataḥ kṣapitavānajināvṛtāṅgaḥ || 34|| uddhūlitaścitirajobhirakhaṇḍamuṇḍa- mālākarālaśikharaḥ suciraṃ cacāra | bhīṣmaśmaśānavasanavyasanaḥ kapāla- khaṭvāṅgapāṇiratitīvramapi vrataṃ kaḥ || 35|| manye bhavāntaraśatopacitasya puṇya- pṛthvīruhaḥ phalamalabhyamabhāgyabhājām | yasyā dṛgañcalavilokanamātrameva sambhāvanaṃ tu vacasā vacasāmabhūmiḥ || 36|| sā tvaṃ mahārghaguṇaratnasamudravelā- lāvaṇyasindhurakalaṅkakulaprasūtiḥ | saubhāgyabhāgyavibhavādibhavā'bhimāna- bhūmānamānayasi yaṃ tapasā prasādam || 37|| itthaṃ vidagdharasadigdhakathākrameṇa devyā samaṃ samabhibhāṣaṇalolubhasya | yadvyājavarṇitaruṇasya tavā'vahittha- saṃruddhamapyatibhareṇa samudbabhūva || 38|| rūpaṃ pradarśya vidadhadgiri sānukampaṃ divyaṃ dhṛtāmṛtarasaṃ girisānukampam | yena vyadhā mukhamakhaṇḍasitāṃśukāntaṃ devyā vapuśca pulakocchvasitāṃśukāntam || 39|| svāminnudāraghanasāratuṣārahāra- kahlāraśāradaniśāramaṇopamena | tāpaṃ tamaśca viṣamaṃ jahi me sahela- mullāsitena hasitena sitena tena || 40|| sahasracaraṇaṃ raviṃ nayanapaṅkajāntaḥsthitaṃ sahasranayanaṃ hariṃ caraṇapaṅkajāntaḥsthitam | vimṛśya dhṛtavismayāṃ bhagavatīmavekṣyodgataṃ prabhorabhimatāptaye hasitamastu śarvasya me || 41|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``hasitastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ viṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 21. ardhanārīśvarastotraṃ ekaviṃśaṃ stotram vandemahyamalamayūkhamauliratnaṃ devasya prakaṭitasarvamaṅgalākhyam | anyonyaṃ sadṛśamahīnakaṅkaṇāṅkaṃ dehārdhadvitayamumārdharuddhamūrteḥ || 1|| tadvande giripatiputrikārdhamiśraṃ śraikaṇṭhaṃ vapurapunarbhavāya yatra | vaktrendorghaṭayati khaṇḍitasya devyā sādharmyaṃ mukuṭagato mṛgāṅkakhaṇḍaḥ || 2|| ekatra sphaṭikaśilāmalaṃ yadardhe pratyagradrutakanakojjvalaṃ paratra | bālārkadyutibharapiñjaraikabhāga- prāleyakṣitidharaśa‍ṛṅgabhaṅgimeti || 3|| yatraikaṃ cakitakuraṅgabhaṅgi cakṣuḥ pronmīlatkucakalaśopaśobhi vakṣaḥ | madhyaṃ ca kraśimasametamuttamāṅgaṃ bhṛṅgālīrucikacasañcayāñcitaṃ ca || 4|| sābhogaṃ ghananibiḍaṃ nitambabimbaṃ pādopi sphuṭamaṇinūpurābhirāmaḥ | ālokya kṣaṇamiti nandinopyakasmā- dāścaryaṃ paramudabhūdabhūtapūrvam || 5|| yatrārdhaṃ ghaṭayati bhūribhūtiśubhraṃ candrāṃśucchuritakuberaśailaśobhām | ardhaṃ ca praṇihitakuṅkumāṅgarāga- mparyastāruṇarucikāñcanādrimudrām || 6|| yatkāntiṃ dadhadapi kāñcanābhirāmāṃ pronmīladbhujagaśubhāṅgadopagūḍham | vibhrāṇaṃ mukuṭamupoḍhacārucandraṃ sandhatte sapadi parasparopamānam || 7|| āścaryaṃ tava dayite hitaṃ vidhātuṃ prāgalbhyaṃ kimapi bhavopatāpabhājām | anyonyaṃ gatamiti vākyamekavaktra- prodbhinnaṃ ghaṭayati yatra sāmarasyam || 8|| pratyaṅgaṃ ghanaparirambhataḥ prakampaṃ vāmārdhaṃ bhujagabhayādivaiti yatra | yatrāpi sphuṭapulakaṃ cakāsti śīta- svaḥsindhusnapitatayeva dakṣiṇārdham || 9|| ekatra sphurati bhujaṅgabhogabhaṅgi- rnīlendīvaradalamālikā paratra | ekatra prathayati bhasmano'ṅgarāgaḥ śubhratvaṃ malayajarañjanaṃ paratra || 10|| ekatrā'rpayati viṣaṃ galasya kārṣṇyaṃ kastūrīkṛtamapi puṇḍrakaṃ paratra | ekatra dyutiramalā'sthimālikānā- manyatra prasarati mauktikāvalīnām || 11|| ekatra srutarudhirā karīndrakṛttiḥ kausumbhaṃ vasanamanaśvaraṃ paratra | ityādīnyapi hi parasparaṃ viruddhā- nyekatvaṃ dadhati vicitradhāmni yatra || 12|| dantānāṃ sitimani kajjalaprayukte- mālinye'pyalikavilocanasya yatra | raktatve karacaraṇādharasya cānyo nā'nyonyaṃ samajani nūtano viśeṣaḥ || 13|| kaṇṭhasya bhramaranibhā vibhārdhabhāgaṃ muktvā kiṃ sthitimakarocchiroruhārdhe | ardhaṃ vā kanakasadṛgruciḥ kacānāṃ santyajya nyaviśata kiṃ galaikadeśe || 14|| sauvarṇaḥ karakamale yathaiva vāme savye'pi dhruvamabhavattathaiva kumbhaḥ | krīḍaikaprasṛtamatirvibhurbibharti svācchandyādurasi tameva nūnamenam || 15|| yatrāsījjagadakhilaṃ yugāvasāne pūrṇatvaṃ yaducitamatra madhyabhāge | saṃrambhādgalitamadastadeva nūnaṃ viśrāntaṃ ghanakaṭhine nitambabimbe || 16|| ityādīnpravidadhureva yatra tāva- tsaṅkalpānprathamasamāgame gaṇendrāḥ | yāvatsa praṇatividhau padāravindaṃ bhṛṅgīśaḥ pariharati sma nā'mbikāyāḥ || 17|| kimayaṃ śivaḥ kimu śivā'tha śivā- viti yatra vandanavidhau bhavati | avibhāvyameva vacanaṃ viduṣā- mavibhāvyameva vacanaṃ viduṣām || 18|| ekaḥ stanaḥ samucitonnatirekamakṣi lakṣyāñjanaṃ tanurapi kraśimānviteti | liṅgaistribhirvyavasite savibhaktike'pi yatrā'vyayatvamavikhaṇḍitameva bhāti || 19|| yatra dhruvaṃ hṛdaya eva yadaikyamāsī- dvākkāyayorapi punaḥ patitaṃ tadeva | yasmātsatāṃ hṛdi yadeva tadeva vāci yaccaiva vāci karaṇe'pyucitaṃ tadeva || 20|| kānte śive tvayi virūḍhamidaṃ manaśca mūrtiśca me hṛdayasammadadāyinīti | anyonyamabhyabhihitaṃ vitanoti yatra sādhāraṇasmitamanoramatāṃ mukhasya || 21|| udyanniruttaraparasparasāmarasya- sambhāvanavyasaninoranavadyahṛdyam | advaitamuttamacamatkṛtisādhanaṃ ta- dyuṣmākamastu śivayoḥ śivayojanāya || 22|| lakṣyāṇyalakṣyāṇyaparatra yatra vilakṣaṇānyeva hi lakṣaṇāni | sāhityamatyadbhutamīśayostanna kasya romāñcamudañcayeta || 23|| jūṭāhermukuṭendranīlarucibhiḥ śyāmaṃ dadhatyūrdhvagaṃ bhāgaṃ vahniśikhāpiśaṅgamadharaṃ madhye sudhācchacchaviḥ | dhatte śakradhanuḥśriyaṃ pratimitā yatrendulekhānṛju- ryuṣmākaṃ sa payodharo bhagavatorharṣāmṛtaṃ varṣatu || 24|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``ardhanārīśvarastotraṃ'' nāmaikaviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 22. kādipadabandhastotraṃ dvāviṃśaṃ stotram kāvyakauśalakalāsu kovidaiḥ kīrtitaḥ kavikulaiḥ kutūhalāt | kaumudīkumudakāntakīrtibhiḥ kāmitaḥ kuśalakāryakāribhiḥ || 1|| keralīkacakalindakanyakākūlakāliyakaḍārakandharaḥ | kilbiṣakṣapaṇakāraṇakratuklāntikṛtkaraṭikṛttikarpaṭaḥ || 2|| kekiketanakṛśānukauśikaiḥ kinnaraiḥ kavikuberakeśavaiḥ | kālakūṭakavalakriyākrame kranditaḥ kaluṣakarṣaṇakṣamaḥ || 3|| karṇakīlitakapālakuṇḍalaḥ kuṇṭhitakrakacakalpakalmaṣaḥ | kālakāmakadanaḥ kumudvatīkāntakarburakapardakandaraḥ || 4|| kāpiśāyanakaṣāyakāminīkelikūjitakalena kautukāt | krīḍitaḥ kvaṇitakīcakakvaṇatkokilākalakalena kānane || 5|| kundakuḍmalakadambaketakīkāñcanārakalikākadambakaiḥ | karṇikārakarabīrakorakaiḥ kairavaiḥ kuvalayaiḥ kuśeśayaiḥ || 6|| kiṃśukaiḥ kapikapolakāntibhiḥ kesaraiḥ kamalakoṣakomalaiḥ | kovidārakuṭajaiḥ kaṇerakaiḥ kevalaiḥ kacitakīrṇakuntalaḥ || 7|| kṛṣṇakuṇḍalikaṭhorakañcukaiḥ kḷptakubjakamanīyakaṅkaṇaḥ | krodhakṛttakarikumbhakoṭarakrūrakesarikiśorakaṇṭakaḥ || 8|| kāntayā kanakakāñcikiṅkiṇīkāntayā kalitakaṇṭhakandalaḥ | kopayankapaṭataḥ kirīṭinaṃ krīḍayā kṛtakirātakaitavaḥ || 9|| kākakaṅkakuraraiḥ kalaṅkite kaśmale kaṭhinakṛtyakārite | kāṅkṣitaḥ kṣatakalevaraiḥ kaṭuṃ karṣayankaruṇayā kadarthanām || 10|| kopakarkaśakṛtāntakiṅkarakleśakātarakṛpākṛtau kṛtī | kalpatāṃ kalikalaṅkakandalīkandakarttanakuṭhārakarmaṇe || 11|| kallolinīkuṭilakairaviṇīkuṭumba- kaṅkālakalpitakarālakirīṭakoṭiḥ | kātyāyanīkarakarambitakīryamāṇa- karpūrakuṅkumakaṇaḥ karuṇāṃ karotu || 12|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``kādipadabandhastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ dvāviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 23. śa‍ṛṅkhalābandhastotraṃ trayoviṃśaṃ stotram jagati vibodhitavidhuraṃ vidhurañjitacāruśekharaṃ giriśam | giri śaṃsāmi sasādhvasasādhvasamānandadānaparam || 1|| na paraṃ śaraṇaṃ prabhavati bhavati kṛtāvajñamānase mahatām | mahatāṃ bhajati hi sahasā sahasā tava bhāratī madhurā || 2|| madhurāgāruṇanayanā nayanāśavidhau paṭīyasī pramadā | pramadārpaṇārthamudite mudite tvayi sā tṛṇaṃ bhajatām || 3|| bhajatāṃ sarasāmamalāṃ mama lāñchitaśekharendunā karuṇām | karuṇāṃ giraṃ navatayā bata yā'rpayati tava śrayatām || 4|| śrayatāṃ navanavidhau tava dhautavatī gīraghaṃ ratiṃ caturam | caturantamahīpatitā patitā heyatva eva yatra satām || 5|| trasatāṃ na kadā bhavatā bhavatāpahṛtā vibho śubhākṛtinā | kṛtināmupakāracitaṃ racitaṃ śubhameva bhāvihitam || 6|| vihitaṃ mayi cāru ciraṃ ruciraṃ na gate vivekalayam | kalayannamalavibhāsitabhāsita rucimehi me vipākamalam || 7|| kamalaṃ raviraparājita rājitavikasadvapuryathā kurute | kuru tena pathā mā bhava mā bhava vimukho dṛśaṃ diśa me || 8|| diśameṣa vicārahitāṃ rahitāṃ viṣayoragairahaṃ na labhe | nalabhekavadativilapan vilapannagavadvṛtaḥ sadā tamasā || 9|| tamasāvujjhitakalahaṃ kalahaṃsagiromayā sadā sahitam | sahitaṃ gīruditarasā tarasā śrayatāṃ vibhuṃ sadayam || 10|| sadayaṃ yadudāramate ramate kurvaṃstadeva deva janaḥ | vaja naḥ karuṇāparatāṃ paratāṃ mā gā namo bhavate || 11|| bhava tejaḥprasarasitaṃ rasitaṃ śrutvā'mṛtopamaṃ bhavataḥ | bhavatastrāsaṃ sakalaṃ sakalaṅkamatiḥ kadā vimuñcāmi || 12|| muñcāmitabhāsa dṛśaṃ sadṛśaṃ śaśinaḥ pradarśya vadanam | vada nandayituṃ jagatīṃ jagatīśaḥ kostu nāmānyaḥ || 13|| nāmānyaḥ sumatirayaṃ tirayanti yaśāṃsi tasya vā vipadam | vipadaṃ na vilāsamaye samaye vapurasya yātyayātavayaḥ || 14|| tava yaḥ stutiṣu sadā hara dāharajaḥ kleśapāśamayam | śamayantīṣvastamanāstamanāhatabhāgyameva deva name || 15|| vanameva śaraṇamadhunā madhunāśinuta prasādanāya tava | yatavati hṛdaye śakalitakalitamaso me namerucitam || 16|| rucitaṃ noragasadanaṃ sadanantamaharddhi nandanaṃ na vanam | navanaṃ dhṛtadīpraguṇaṃ praguṇaṃ tava kartumeva deva rame || 17|| varamenoharamamalaṃ mama laṅghitavighna dehi nāma hitam | mahitaṃ padamapi mā naya mānaya vidhuraṃ dṛśāmalayā || 18|| malayānilamiva surabhiṃ surabhiṃ kusumairivāvadātavanam | tava nanditahṛdanāmaya nāma yamatrāsahṛtkalaye || 19|| kalayendorabhibhūṣita bhūṣitamukuṭaiḥ surairnateśa na kaiḥ | śanakairaghaśamanāśaya nāśaya vipadaṃ padaṃ naya mā || 20|| na yamāhitabhayaśamane śamanekavidhaṃ prasādadakṣamate | kṣamate munibhirupāsita pāsitarāṃ cenna māmadayam || 21|| madayañjitaviprakṛtīḥ prakṛtīrvasudhādhipo mahīvalayam | balayantritaripurakṣati rakṣati tava yaḥ prasādamitaḥ || 22|| damitastena hi śamanaḥ śamanastarucāpi tena jātamudā | tamudārāhitacaritaṃ caritaṃ śubhavartmanā stuvantyamalam || 23|| tyamalaṅkṛtabhūbhavanaṃ bhava nanditalokamīśa bhāvapuṣā | vapuṣā naumyabhayastava yastava nutiṣu priyāsu kṛtī || 24|| sukṛtī tava bhavavāraṇavāraṇahariṇendra siddhibhājanatām | janatāṃ nayadamalasitaṃ lasitaṃ vapurarcaye navairasakṛt || 25|| rasakṛdyo'pratighasmaraghasmara bhavataḥ stavaḥ sadaiva satām | vasatāṃ divi bhayahṛdayaṃ hṛdayaṃ kurute ghanotkalikam || 26|| kalikampanamaghaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ caraṇadvayaṃ bhaje'vikalam | vikalaṅkamatirahaṃ tava hanta varadviradarājagatim || 27|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭakṛte bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``śa‍ṛṅkhalābandhastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 24. dvipadayamakaṃ caturviṃśaṃ stotram vacasi sarasvati me vibhavaṃ prakaṭaya jātarasāram | nutibhirupastuhi devi bhayaṃ sakalasurāntarasāram || 1|| aviralabhasmarajodhavalaṃ vihitamahāśamalābham | bhaja bhagavatyagajādhavalaṃ śramaśamanaṃ vimalābham || 2|| dātumanuttamahāvapuṣaṃ yaḥ prababhūva nadīnam | nāthamanuttamahāvapuṣaṃ taṃ bhaja devi na dīnam || 3|| bhaktirasastava deva satāṃ jayati mahāmṛtahṛdyaḥ | caraṇatale bhavato vasatāṃ kalimalapalvalahṛdyaḥ || 4|| nayanamudīrya tamo hara me nihatamahāviṣameṣu | yena punarhatamoha rame vairiṣu no viṣameṣu || 5|| tvayi varade rucirapramadāḥ pracalitacāmarahastāḥ | sadasi bhajanti janaṃ pramadā ramayati so'pi rahastāḥ || 6|| himakarakiraṇasamūhasitaṃ surasaridambuviḍambi | vaha bhagavan vadane hasitaṃ mā bhavatātra viḍambi || 7|| upamitamanmathacāpalatāṃ bhruvamavadhūya sahelam | ravijadṛśāṃ ghanacāpalatāṃ vighaṭaya tā na sahe'lam || 8|| ravisutavartma mama smarataḥ śrutayamakiṅkaravāṇi | dalati vibho hṛdayaṃ darataḥ purahara kiṃ karavāṇi || 9|| prathayati yastava hanta mahaṃ nutivacasā rucireṇa | śubhaśatasiddhisahaṃ tamahaṃ śirasi vahāmyacireṇa || 10|| bhavabhayabhañjanabhaṅgividhau bhaktimatāṃ prabhavantam | vihitahitaṃ vidhure'pi vidhau bhajata jagatprabhavaṃ tam || 11|| madanamahīruhadavadahanaṃ śirasi dhṛtāmṛtabhāsam | bhajata durantaviṣādahanaṃ praṇatasamarpitabhāsam || 12|| vitara nadīramaṇaṃ śamanaṃ śakalaya khaṇḍaya kāmam | prathaya dhanañjayabhayaśamanaṃ racaya puraṃ hatakāmam || 13|| iti sadayena yadācaritaṃ bhuvanahitāya hareṇa | bhajata tadasya mahācaritaṃ nutivacasārtihareṇa || 14|| gatiraśubhaṃ hara kā taratāṃ bhavati vināśa bhavantam | iti caturaṃ hara kātaratāṃ racaya ca māṃ śubhavantam || 15|| varada bhavantamṛte dharate bhuvanamidaṃ sakalaṃ kaḥ | iti natimindukalādhara te bhajati na kaḥ sakalaṅkaḥ || 16|| iyamakhiletarajātimatāṃ jayati janiḥ prathamā naḥ | sevyabhuvaṃ vibhureti matāṃ yatra hṛdi prathamānaḥ || 17|| tubhyamayaṃ śitināla satāṃ varada karomi namo'ham | śamaya maheśa mamālasatāṃ yena bhajāmi na moham || 18|| bhajasi yayā kila kāmadayā natajanamīśa samastam | sā mama te hatakāma dayā gamayatu vaiśasamastam || 19|| yena śucaṃ hatalobha janastyajati sudhāmadhureṇa | tena vibho vacasā bhaja naḥ prakaṭitadhāmadhureṇa || 20|| madayasi yena janaṃ sakalaṃ madhuragirā vadanena | mayi vacanaṃ parihāsakalaṃ pratidiśa tāvadanena || 21|| yena satāṃ vipadānayanaṃ duritamadabhramahāri | diśa viśadaṃ mayi tannayanaṃ madanamadabhramahāri || 22|| jagadakhilaṃ yadi nandayase timiramuṣā rasitena | imamapi kiṃ na janaṃ dayase tena tuṣārasitena || 23|| duritahṛtau viṣasāda karaḥ kvāpi na te ramaṇīyaḥ | api sa bhayaṃ viṣasādakaraḥ śamayatu ghoramaṇīyaḥ || 24|| bhayaharaṇe mahitābha yataḥ prathayasi jātarasatvam | māmapi pāhi mahābhayataḥ purahara kātarasattvam || 25|| bhajāmi māyāśabaraṃ varaṃ varaṃ diśantamantaṃ kunayaṃ nayannayam | vijitya kṛtyaprabhavaṃ bhavaṃ bhavaṃ vikhaṇḍitakleśaparamparaṃ param || 26|| malakṣayamalakṣayaṃ bhava bhavatprasādādahaṃ śivastava śiva stavaḥ pravihitastato'yaṃ mayā | samuddhara samuddhara vyasanasaṅkaṭādarkajaḥ samakṣamasamakṣamaḥ spṛśati cenna jihveṣi kim || 27|| santyanyāḥ kṛtināmanāmayagiraḥ kā nāma nāmantharā na jñānāṃ hṛdi vāstavāstava mudaṃ ke vā stavāstanvate | vāgeṣā tvatisādhvasādhvapatitā yatsādhvasādhvabhyadhā- ttanmanye mahimānamānayati te sthemānamānandakṛt || 28|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarsya stutikusumāñjalau ``dvipadayamakaṃ'' nāma caturviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 25. rucirañjanākhyaṃ pañcaviṃśaṃ stotram kila yasya kalpitamahodayayā- hṛdayaṃ samāśritamaho dayayā | vibhavaṃ yataśca paramāpa divaḥ prabhureṣa pātu paramāpadi vaḥ || 1|| tava sevakasya parameśa manaḥ kurute na hantumapi me śamanaḥ | bhagavannato vapuranīrasadṛ- ktava naumi siddhadhuninīrasadṛk || 2|| sragivā'rpyate kalitasārasanā tvayi gīryayā jayati sā rasanā | tvayi yanmaheśa varade'vahitaṃ hṛdayaṃ tadeva varadeva hitam || 3|| tava dṛksudhākarakalopamitā- patitā vipattadanulopamitā | bhagavan dṛśaiva kamalā bhavataḥ sahasā'ṅkameti śamalā bhavataḥ || 4|| kuru nātha cetasi vaco dayitā tava gīrahaṃ na tava codayitā | athavā maheśa pṛthukāmatayā na kimāraṭanti pṛthukā matayā || 5|| viṣayairmukhe varada kāmadhurai- rvivaśīkṛtaṃ ghaṭitakāmadhuraiḥ | bhaja māṃ maheśvara mudā rahitaṃ diśa bhāṣitāmṛtamudārahitam || 6|| vijitaṃ mayā jagadamohatayā na ruṣā kṣato mama damo hatayā | tṛṇavatsurakṣitidharo'pi tayā vihito maheśa hṛdi ropitayā || 7|| marutāyateva malayācalataḥ kṣapitā dhṛtiḥ kamalayā calataḥ | tadimāṃ prasādanaparāṃ karuṇāṃ śa‍ṛṇu me giraṃ kuru parāṃ karuṇām || 8|| bhavataḥ prasādamadhurāmahatāṃ dṛśamīyuṣāṃ śamadhurā mahatām | dhṛtimetyapāsya ca ramā lasatāṃ sulabhatvameti caramālasatām || 9|| samare vikīrṇagajarājaghaṭe bata tasya śaktirajarā jaghaṭe | tava yena sevanavidhau tarasā matirarpitā'nyabhavidhautarasā || 10|| viṣayānprati prayatamānamadaḥ sujano manaḥ prayatamānamadaḥ | tava śāsanena vaśamānayate śaraṇaṃ tato navaśamānayate || 11|| ravijaṃ rajobhiriva mecakitaṃ hṛdayaṃ vibhāvya śiva me cakitam | vacanaṃ jitāmṛtarasaṃ bhramataḥ pathi saṅkaṭe vitara sambhramataḥ || 12|| tvayi cakṣurīśa kalitāpakṛti kṣipati kṣaṇaṃ śakalitāpakṛti | paraśaktiriddhavapuraṅgamitā janatā yayā tava puraṃ gamitā || 13|| ravijasya varṣma sahasā racitaṃ bhavatāgnisādasahasāracitam | vapurāpa te madanaghasmaratāṃ na tathāpi bhīmadanaghasmaratām || 14|| karuṇā kṣatānavadhikopacayā- dhigatā mayā tvadadhikopacayā | śaśinā yathākulataraṃ galatā dyusarinnirargalataraṅgalatā || 15|| garuḍena yadviṣamapakṣatinā kavalīkṛtaṃ viṣamapakṣatinā | sa tava prasādamahimā na paraḥ prabhurānataṃ prati hi mānaparaḥ || 16|| padamāptumārtiśamanaṃ gahanaṃ prabhumarthaye bhṛśamanaṅgahanam | vasanaṃ yathārttiharaṇaṃ sahime samaye tathaiva śaraṇaṃ sa hi me || 17|| surasundarīṣu ramaṇīyatamā svavapurguṇena ramaṇī yatamā | tava bhaktamakṣatarasājara sā bhajate sametya tarasā jarasā || 18|| tvayi gīrmayā nijagade bata yā nikhilaṃ jayāmi jagadeva tayā | muditasya bhaktisudhayā bhavataḥ sabhayasya kiṃ vasudhayā bhavataḥ || 19|| śirasi srajeva vidhurocitayā hṛdi madgirātra vidhurocitayā | kriyatāṃ padaṃ śiva dhiyā sahate'- vipadaṃ sadānavadhi yā sahate || 20|| vibhumāśraye vigaladaṅgalataḥ pramaye bibhemi yadamaṅgalataḥ | sa vimucya pāśamaśamaṃ galataḥ kurute hi me bhayaśamaṃ galataḥ || 21|| caraṇau yathā murajitaḥ kṣamayā- dhigatau bharaṃ dharitumakṣamayā | namatāṃ tathaiva kṛtarakṣa mayā bhavato dhiyā samucitakṣamayā || 22|| timiraṃ raveriva vibhāmuditāṃ dṛśamāpya te jahati yā muditām | bhagavan rasādgiramimāmuditā- mupakarṇayanmayi diśā'muditām || 23|| karuṇā suraiḥ pratipadānata yā bhavataḥ stutā sadapadānatayā | kimu māṃ bhiyāptamapadānatayā bhajase nirastavipadā na tayā || 24|| tava dṛgjayatyalasatāṃ lasatāṃ madanasya yā vyatanutā'tanutām | kuśalāya sā kila satāṃ lasatāṃ nibiḍaṃ śamapyatanutā tanutām || 25|| yayā bhajante bhuvi mānavā hitāṃ vibhūtimante ca vimānavāhitām | yamaṃ ca yā'dhāddalaśo bhayānakaṃ tayā dṛśā pāsyuruśobhayā na kam || 26|| paramayā ramayā rahitasya me na ruciraṃ ruciraṅgamimaṃ vyadhāt | hara mayā'ramayāci bhavānataḥ kuru ciraṃ rucirañjanamehi me || 27|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭakṛte bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``rucirañjanākhyaṃ'' pañcaviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 26. pādādiyamakastotraṃ ṣaḍviṃśaṃ stotram hantāpahantāpadupadravāṇāṃ yasyā'kṣayasyākṣaṇikaḥ prasādaḥ | santāpasantāpaharā prapeva kāntārakāntā rasanā ca yasya || 1|| tādṛṅmatā dṛṅmahatāṃ samantā- dālokadā lokahitā ca yasya | taṃ santataṃ santamasārttaloka- pālaṃ kṛpālaṅkṛtamīśamīḍe || 2|| hṛdyaḥ suhṛdyaḥ sukṛtorjitānā- manyūnamanyūnapi yaḥ pṛṇāti | yo'nāmayo nāmagṛhītimātrā- dastāpadastāpamapākaroti || 3|| cetaḥ pracetaḥpramukhā yadeka- tānantatānantaguṇā vahanti | yogīti yo gītiṣu gīyamānaḥ siddhaiḥ prasiddhaiḥ prabhurabhyupetaḥ || 4|| mānyo'dhamānyo'dharayatyudagra- raṃhobhiraṃhobhirapāstavṛttān | nāmāpi nāmāpidadhāti vītā- lokasya lokasya tamāṃsi yasya || 5|| bhūtirvibhūtirvipulā diśaśca vāso nivāso nilayaḥ pitṝṇām | hīnairahīnairapi yasya bhūṣā'- rālā karālā kalikā ca maulau || 6|| yaḥ khe'layaḥ khelati yaḥ śikhābhiḥ satyaṃ hasatyaṃhatihāriṇībhiḥ | bhānāṃ śubhānāṃ śucirīśvaro ya- stānakṣatānakṣiṣu yo bibharti || 7|| saṅkhyeṣvasaṅkhyeṣvapi yo bhaṭānāṃ vairasya vairasyabhuvo nidānam | nindāvaniṃ dāvahutāśavantaṃ roṣaṃ kharoṣaṃ khalu yaḥ pramārṣṭi || 8|| yajñe nayajñena vṛto na pūrvaṃ dakṣeṇa dakṣeṇa śubhe vidhau yaḥ | tasyā''natasyā'naghamujjhitāva- sādaṃ prasādaṃ pradadau dayābdhiḥ || 9|| nītāvanītāvacalairalabhyaḥ sādhyairasādhyairapi yastapobhiḥ | sevālase bālamunau kilopa- manyāvamanyāvakarotprasādaḥ || 10|| nāyaṃ vinā'yaṃ vidadhāti lokaḥ karmaṇyakarmaṇyatayābhiyogam | sattvānasattvānapi netumāsthā- marthaḥ samarthaḥ sa yato'bhyudeti || 11|| dharmeṇa dharmeṇa nijocitena kāmena kāmena vṛtābhayena | kālena kāle natimāgatena vātena vā tena sukhāvahena || 12|| jīvena jīvena tadarpitena kāvyena kāvyena manohareṇa | mitreṇa mitreṇa tamovṛtānāṃ saumyena saumyena ca sevyate yaḥ || 13|| lokān salokān sadayo'sṛjadyo dhātā vidhātā vibhurīpsitānām | devaḥ pade vaḥ parame niyoktā kāmaṃ sakāmaṃ saphalīkarotu || 14|| taṃ vanditaṃ vandibhirarcayante santo lasanto lalitairvacobhiḥ | tasyā'jitasyājiṣu nauti līlā- muttālamuttālaraveṇa lokaḥ || 15|| dhīrasya dhīrasyati tasyatīkṣṇā- bandhānubandhānugatāṃ pravṛttim | dānaṃ dadānaṃ dayiteva rāgā- dānandadā nandayate ca taṃ śrīḥ || 16|| sampannasampannavasiddhihetuṃ dhuryāmadhuryāmamarendramukhyāḥ | bhāsā śubhā sā śucirīśabhakti- ryasyā'bhayasyābharaṇatvameti || 17|| śaṅkā bhṛśaṃ kā bhṛtakapriyaśce- dāsannadāsaṃ na jahāti śambhuḥ | nārādhanārādhayituśca mithyā kiṃ citta kiñcittaralatvameṣi || 18|| sānanda sā nandanabhūstṛṇaṃ te kalyāṇa kalyāṇagiriḥ kva gaṇyaḥ | sā tejasā te jaḍatāmudasta- kampā'nukampā nudatīndumauleḥ || 19|| jambālajaṃ bālaraverivābhā- 'dīnaṃ nadīnaṃ navacandrikeva | sāśaṅka sā śaṅkarabhaktiruccai- rakṣāmarakṣā madayiṣyati tvām || 20|| no bhogino bhogibhirarcito yaḥ sātaṅka sātaṃ kalayañjahāti | sa tvā'lasatvālayadainyahārī pāsyatyapāsatyaśubhaṃ ca śambhuḥ || 21|| doṣapradoṣaprasṛtāpi saktā sevārase vāravilāsinīva | yā nirbhayā nirbhararāgiṇī tvā- māyāti māyātimire'bhisarttum || 22|| bhāvānubhāvānugamena rūḍhā bālā navālānagatā vaśeva | sā'nehasā neha vihāsyati tvāṃ kaṇṭhopakaṇṭhopagataiva vāṇī || 23|| divyā yadi vyāyatakāntayaste gaurīśa gaurī śaśinaḥ kalā ca | vighnanti vighnaṃ timirābhidhānaṃ tenā'hatenā'hamupadrutaḥ kim || 24|| mudyogamudyogabhṛto bhajante śaṃsanti śaṃ santi ca nirvikalpāḥ | bhaktā vibhaktā vipadastvadīyāḥ kasmādakasmādahameva magnaḥ || 25|| vācāṃ tavācāntaśucāṃ śubhānā moghā na moghā namatāṃ kadācit | tairuddhatairuddhara māmanāthaṃ līnaṃ kulīnaṃ kudaśāndhakāre || 26|| kalpāntakalpāntakabhītiyuktaṃ rakṣāmi rakṣāmiha yo'rhatīti | yaste nayastena diśa prasannā- matrā'samatrāsaharāṃ dṛśaṃ me || 27|| kandarpa kaṃ darpamupaiṣi yāta- mastaṃ samastaṃ sahasā balaṃ te | bhīro gabhīro galitaḥ kimuccai- rakṣobharakṣo bhagavatprasādaḥ || 28|| vidyāmavidyāmapi tāṃ yayā tvā- mārādhyamārādhya sukhī bhavāmi | māyāpi mā yāpitabhīrupaitu yātā na yā tānavamarcituṃ tvām || 29|| rāmābhirāmābhimatā dhṛtārdhe bhogopabhogopagatena kena | kasyāntakasyāntakarī ca lakṣmī- dhāmāni dhāmāni bibharti dṛṣṭiḥ || 30|| kaḥ stambhakaḥ stambhanibhasya jiṣṇoḥ kastāpakastāpakṛtaḥ smarasya | kārānukārānubhave bhave'smin ko jīvako jīvabhṛtāṃ vinā tvām || 31|| yā śaṃsayā śaṃsati śambhubhaktiṃ ceṣṭāsu ceṣṭāsu ratiṃ smarasya | tāmakṣatāmakṣayapuṇyakoṣā- danyo vadanyo vahate tanuṃ kaḥ || 32|| yāhantayā hanta nṛpe'pyavajñā- mānañja mānaṃ janayantyabhaṅgam | hā niḥsahā niḥsaraṇe'pi bhaktyā sā vāgasāvāgamadantikaṃ te || 33|| devaṃ yadevaṃ yamakairmaheśaṃ tuṣṭāva tuṣṭāvasarocitaṃ gīḥ | śasyo yaśasyo'yamupasthito'smā- denobhide no'bhimataḥ prasādaḥ || 34|| taralataralatāgrasparddhinī cañcalatvaṃ ruciraruciramandānandadā muñcati śrīḥ | carati ca ratikāntadhvaṃsiśaṃsāratānāṃ madhuramadhurasārdrā bhāratī vaktrapadme || 35|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``pādādiyamakastotraṃ'' nāma ṣaḍviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 27. pādamadhyayamakākhyaṃ saptaviṃśaṃ stotram jayati saṃyati saṅgatapāṇḍava- praharaṇāharaṇāhitakaitavaḥ | taruṇadāruṇadāśavapurdhṛta- sthirayaśā rayaśāliśaro haraḥ || 1|| bhuvanapāvanapādamadharṣitaṃ maghavatā'ghavatāmapi saspṛham | munijanīnijanītiparīkṣaṇe dhavalakevalakelikṛtaṃ stumaḥ || 2|| sthiramagāramagātmajayā śritaṃ smaravikāravikāsaparāṅmukham | bhujagarājagarāgniśikhāvalī- viṣamaveṣamavepathudāyinam || 3|| śamiṣu kāmiṣu kāruṇikeṣu vā varamaghoramaghopaśamakṣamam | ghanavipannavipannidhane sadā paramadhīramadhīśamupāsmahe || 4|| śrutanayāstanayāstanumadhyamā yuvatayo bata yogimanohṛtaḥ | yadaghanāmaghanāmayavaiśasaṃ tadamṛteśamṛte śamayanti kim || 5|| na hariṇā hariṇāṅkaśikhāmaṇe na vidhinā vidhinā'pi saparyatā | tava purā vapurāmamṛśe vayaṃ kva nu bhavānubhavāvṛtacetasaḥ || 6|| caturagāsturagā nagajā gajāḥ sthiramudāramudāttabalaṃ balam | prabhavatā bhavatā vihite hite pratidiśanti diśaṃ kamalāmalām || 7|| dvijasamājasamādhikadarthana- pravaṇarāvaṇarājyahṛtau kṛtī | caraṇayo raṇayogyabalo'bhava- nnavanato vanato bharatāgrajaḥ || 8|| śubharato bharato'pyabhavaddviṣad- garimahārimahāḥ samavāpya yam | diśa tamīśa tamīpatiśekhara sthiramanugramanugrahamehi me || 9|| bhṛśamanīśamanītipathasthitaṃ madavaśādavaśākṣamupaplutam | aharaharhara harṣayate na kiṃ hitavatī tava tīvraśucaṃ ruciḥ || 10|| kuśalapeśalapelavadṛgvaman rasanayā sanayārttihṛtāmṛtam | madanasādana sāntvaya sampadā- mapadamāpadamāśritamehi mām || 11|| kathamanāthamanāgasamantike madanamardana marṣayase na mām | bhuvanabhāvana bhāti vinā tvayā jagati ko'gatikoddharaṇakṣamaḥ || 12|| yadi kṛpāpara pāparatasya me na kuruṣe paruṣe padamāśaye | hitatamā katamā kaluṣātmano mama harā'maharā ghaṭate gatiḥ || 13|| sthiravibhā ravibhātirivonmadaṃ madamayaṃ damayantyasamantamaḥ | tava dayā vada yātyudayaṃ na ced bhavatamī bata mīlati me katham || 14|| rajanirājanirākaraṇakṣamaḥ kṣataniśātaniśātimirotkaraḥ | kṛtavibhātavibhābharabhāsvaro dinakaro na karotyudayaṃ yadā || 15|| divi yadā viyadābharaṇaṃ kṛpā- paramate ramate na sudhākaraḥ | na śucirāśu cirāpatitaṃ yadā sthiramapāramapākurute tamaḥ || 16|| tanukṛśānukṛśāṃ grasate yadā mihirajāhirajātaghṛṇastanum | śiva tadā bata dāsyati me dhṛtiṃ tvaditaraḥ kataraḥ karuṇāparaḥ || 17|| nidhanasādhanasāndralasadviṣā- nalakarālakarāttamahoragaḥ | niyamanāya manāṅmama saspṛhe bhavati dhāvati dhāma yamaḥ katham || 18|| palitamīlitamīśa mama smara- ścaturamāturamāracayanvapuḥ | ghanabale'navalepapare tvayi prabhavitā bhavitāpakaraḥ katham || 19|| kimadhunā madhunāpi yuto vahan ratimabhītimabhīṣṭatamāmapi | śritamavantamavandhyabalaṃ vibhuṃ jayati māṃ yatimānaharaḥ smaraḥ || 20|| viṣamaroṣamaroḥ pathi pātaya- nmatimanītimanīkṣitasatpathām | bhṛśamayaṃ śamayanniyamaṃ kathaṃ tava puro vapuroṣati me madaḥ || 21|| mama nikāmanikārakṛto vṛthā vapuravāpuravāryaruṣo'rayaḥ | na hi tadāhitadāhamadantyamī tava hitāvahitā hi nateṣu dhīḥ || 22|| yadi vibhā divi bhāti na tāvakī yadi na me dinameti bhavanmayam | vada mahādamahāri tamaḥ kathaṃ viṣamadoṣamado vinivartate || 23|| kamalinī malinīkriyate yayā vihatasantatasantamasāpi yā | smaracitā racitāpi ca yatra tāṃ vitara kātarakāmadughāṃ dṛśam || 24|| tuhinavāhinavānilaje manaḥ sahasi raṃhasi rañjayati priyā | na rasikorasi koṣṇakucā tathā tava guṇānuguṇā nutigīryathā || 25|| ayamasau yamasauṣṭhavahṛtpuraḥ paruṣapauruṣapauṣṭikaceṣṭitaḥ | vidhurabandhuravandhyaparigrahaḥ sphurati me ratimetya maheśvaraḥ || 26|| anidhanena dhanena manasvinā- manuguṇena guṇena garīyasā | abhijanena janena suduṣkṛtai- raśabalena balena ca vardhate || 27|| abhinavena navena śivasya yaḥ stutimudāramudārabhate'munā | avahitasya hi tasya tanoti śaṃ vibhavado bhavadoṣaharo haraḥ || 28|| sa sakalāsu kalāsu vicakṣaṇaḥ sa matimānatimānasamunnataḥ | na śaśikhaṇḍaśikhaṇḍamṛte stutiṃ sukṛtavān kṛtavānaparasya yaḥ || 29|| raviraho virahoddharaṇāddi- śandhṛtimudeti mude rathapakṣiṇām | yadaviṣādaviṣābhibhavaṃ jaga- tkṛtamasantamasaṃ stutibhiḥ prabhoḥ || 30|| vinayaśobhiḥ yaśobhirataṃ manaḥ parahitārahitā vimalā matiḥ | vipulamaṅgalamaṅgamiti prabhoḥ pratiphalanti phalaṃ stutivīrudhaḥ || 31|| jitasudhārasudhārasabhāratī- vibhavasambhavasambhṛtakīrtayaḥ | kavibudhā vibudhādhipavanditaṃ sukṛtinaḥ kṛtinaḥ stuvate śivam || 32|| na mahatāmahatāmalasaṃvidāṃ madayitā dayitādhigamastathā | madhurasādhurasārdrapadā yathā sayamakā yamakāmaripustutiḥ || 33|| kā nāma nāmaravadhūravadhūtakāntā kāntā na kā narajanī rajanīpatiśrīḥ | śrīmantamantakaripuṃ karipuṅgavānta- hetuṃ stuvantamavirāmavirāvameti || 34|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``pādamadhyayamakākhyaṃ'' saptaviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 28. pādāntayamakastotraṃ aṣṭāviṃśaṃ stotram antaścetasi nirvṛtirna gamitā nāśaṃ kayā śaṅkayā naiṣā puṣyati tena saṃhṛtagatiḥ śobhāratī bhāratī | bhaktiḥ kiṃ tu vijṛmbhate mama yathaivābhā svato bhāsvato yādṛktādṛgataḥ kimapyabhidadhe sampratyahaṃ pratyaham || 1|| vaktraṃ bibhradadabhradīrghadahanajvālaṃ bhayaṃ lambha- yannudgrīvaṃ ghaṭayankare vidadhataṃ vyālaṃ ghanaṃ laṅghanam | pratyāsīdati mṛtyurityupacitasphārocitāṃ rocitāṃ śrutvā māṃ na kathaṃ vibhurgiramimāṃ citrāyatāṃ trāyatām || 2|| manye tāṃ spṛhaṇīyagauravaguṇāmāyāminīṃ yāminīṃ tatsevārasamādadhattava sudhā saṃvādinaṃ vā dinam | yatropāntagataṃ vacobhirucitairānandinaṃ nandinaṃ kurvadbhiścaritaṃ sucāru jagatāmīśasya te śasyate || 3|| tasyodeti sadaḥsadāṃ vidalitaglānirbharo nirbharo vācāṃ vaktrasaroruhe pariṇamatpāko'malaḥ komalaḥ | lakṣmīstaṃ na jahāti kiṃ ca vibhavairābhāsitābhāsitā yena tvaṃ hṛdayāmbuje bhavabhayāttrātoṣitastoṣitaḥ || 4|| sevyante bhagavannapāsya(avāpya)kalitollāsaṃ madaṃ samadam (padaṃ sampadaṃ) bibhrāṇāstaruṇījanena madhuravyāhāriṇā hāriṇā | vījyante divi candraraśmirucitaiḥ kiñcā'maraiścāmarai- rābālyādvidadhe tvadekaviṣayā yaiḥ śemuṣī śemuṣī || 5|| tūrṇaṃ cūrṇayituṃ vapuryamabhaṭo jhampārayaṃ pāraya- nnuccaṇḍabhrukuṭīkarālitamukho yatrāsakṛttrāsakṛt | tāṃ bhūmiṃ parihartumīśvara bhavatsevādhanaṃ bādhanaṃ duḥkhānāmadhigamya hanmi kumatiprāduṣkṛtaṃ duṣkṛtam || 6|| muñcadbhiryamakiṅkaraiḥ kṛtamahājṛmbhairavaṃ bhairavaṃ yāvaddarśitamānanaṃ na ghusṛṇakṣodāruṇaṃ dāruṇam | tāvatsattvaramehi dehi mahasāṃ dhāmedṛśaṃ me dṛśaṃ yā dūrīkurute nirantarasudhāsandohadaṃ dohadam || 7|| yāvadduḥsahavahnihetivihitasphītāpadaṃ tāpadaṃ jantūnāṃ bhagavan bhajāmi narakaṃ nāhaṃ sadāhaṃ sadā | tāvanmuñca vaco yathā marupathe bādhāvatāṃ dhāvatāṃ bhīṣmagrīṣmakadarthyamānavapuṣāṃ sañjīvanaṃ jīvanam || 8|| nyastaṃ yena manastvayīdamahatotsāhaṃ tayā'hantayā gāḍhodvegavidhāyinī ghaṭayate sāyāsatāṃ yā satām | taṃ bhogairupasevate sumanasāmānandane nandane divyastrījanatā vilāsavikasacchobhā suraṃ bhāsuram || 9|| yasyā hanti dhṛtiṃ vivekavihitahrāsā vilāsāvilā mugdhā dṛṅmadirāmadena vigaladvācāruṇā cāruṇā | rāmā kāmamahāstramarpayati me sā hanta mohaṃ tamo yenā'jñānamayaṃ manasyuparamattāpaprathe paprathe || 10|| lajje'haṃ bhaja dūrameva rabhasādevaṃ dhutā bandhutā- sammūḍhena mayā yayā vidhṛtavānetāmahantāmaham | kiṃ kiṃ śrīmadamohitena vibhavasthenā'hitaṃ nāhitaṃ yenaitāṃ na bhaje punarmayi varaṃ bādhe hitaṃ dhehi tam || 11|| ānītā caraṇāntikapraṇayitāṃ kāmena kā menakā kāryaṃ kiṃ ghanabhogasambhṛtavidhau sārambhayā rambhayā | kāntā me parameśvare hatavipatsambhāvanā bhāvanā citte kāpi ratiryayāhitahitavrātāyate tāyate || 12|| dhatte yasya jaṭā kapālapaṭalaṃ bhavyā kulaṃ vyākulaṃ haṃsānāmiva rundhatīṃ bhagavatīṃ gaṅgāṃ taraṅgāntaram | tasyādhāya maheśiturnutigirāṃ navyākṛtiṃ vyākṛtiṃ bhaktyā niścalayā nṛjanma sakalaṃ sammānayāmānayā || 13|| kañcicchrīrvasateḥ karotu vikasacchobhā janaṃ bhājanaṃ kañcidvandijanaḥ praśaṃsatu mudaṃ prītyā gatastyāgataḥ | manye'haṃ tu samagraśokaśamanaṃ saṃnyāsamanyāsamaṃ yasminmṛtyujitaṃ bhajāmi manasā vāceṣṭayā ceṣṭayā || 14|| rūpaṃ yadbhavato dadhatparikaraṃ bhaujaṅgaṃ jaṅgamaṃ sevante yadapi śriyā kṛtadhiyaḥ svasthā varaṃ sthāvaram | prājyaṃ jyotiriva prasahya tamasāṃ vaikartanaṃ kartanaṃ labdhvā tatpratibhā kathaṃ na janitasvābhā satāṃ bhāsatām || 15|| stotuṃ vāñchasi saṃśritaṃ marakataśyāmaṃ galaṃ maṅgalaṃ labdhuṃ mānasa tatparaṃ bhagavataḥ sevāsu kiṃ vāsukim | bhaktiścedbhavati sthitiṃ madamarudvegāhate gāhate tadbadhnāsi dhṛtiṃ tvamapyahipatiprāvārasevārase || 16|| dṛṣṭvā yanmaghavā vihāya gatavānairāvaṇaṃ rāvaṇaṃ paśyanpāṇḍutayā bhayādanukṛtaśyāmādhavaṃ mādhvam | sarvo'yaṃ bhavataḥ prasādamahimā hantā navaṃ tānavaṃ sevā kasya na siddhaye hatavṛthāsaṅkalpa te kalpate || 17|| taṃ hatvā sabalaṃ niśācarapatiṃ laṅkālayaṃ kālaya- nnārtiṃ nākasadāmupetya vibhavaṃ vaibhīṣaṇaṃ bhīṣaṇam | vaidehīmanaghāṃ labheta sa kathaṃ rāmo hi tāṃ mohitāṃ tvadbhaktiṃ yadi na vyadhāsyatanuto bhrājiṣṇunā jiṣṇunā || 18|| lokaṃ śokaharaṃ paraṃ prati bhṛśaṃ sandehināṃ dehināṃ māyā mohatamovimohitadṛśāmāyāsadā yā sadā | tāṃ hantuṃ mama kiṃ karoṣi vihitajñānodayāṃ no dayāṃ yasyā dāsyamapīha nārhati ghanasphārā sudhārā sudhā || 19|| doṣāṇāṃ sahasā vidhātumudayaṃ no sāmprataṃ sāmprataṃ svālokakṣapaṇaṃ karotu timiraṃ tanmādṛśāṃ mā dṛśām | khyātaḥ pauṣṇa iva prasahya kamalollāsādayaṃ sādaya- nnārtiṃ na prakaṭīkaroti bata kāmāśāṃ karaḥ śāṅkaraḥ || 20|| śītasnigdhaṃ parimalasukhaṃ ghānasāraṃ na sāraṃ nāpi premṇā kalitalalitoddāmahelāmahelā | tasmājjitvā bhavamanuditastambhajeyaṃ bhajeyaṃ bhūyo bhūyo hara parahitārambhavantaṃ bhavantam || 21|| dṛṣṭiḥ strīṇāṃ mama nivasato hāniśānte niśānte cittaṃ rundhe śiśumiva mṛgaṃ vāgurā bhaṅgurābham | tatsamparkādahamiva sahe deva mānā'vamānā- vārttaḥ prāptaḥ śaraṇamadhunā tvāmudāraṃ mudāram || 22|| prājyaṃ rājyaṃ nṛpatimakarīratnaniryatnanirya- draśmisrotaḥsnapitacaraṇaṃ krāntasāmantasām | sabhrūbhaṅgaṃ munijanamanaḥkṣobhirāmā'bhirāmā vaktraṃ bibhratyupacitaratirghasmareṇa smareṇa || 23|| dvāri kṣobhaḥ kṣitidharaguhābhogajānāṃ gajānāṃ kā vā saṅkhyā prakaṭitavipadbādhanānāṃ dhanānām | itthaṃ lakṣmīḥ kathamiva bhajeddhāmahīnaṃ mahīnaṃ syāccennaikastava kṛtaripukṣiprasādaḥ prasādaḥ || 24|| bhīmāṃ paṅktiṃ puruṣaśirasāṃ mastake'śastakeśa- protāṃ dhatse vibudhasarito yāṃ taraṅgāntaraṅgām | saiva śreyaḥ prathayati yathā deva rājīva rājī tvatsamparkādghaṭayati na kiṃ maṅgalābhaṅgalābham || 25|| kṛtvā śayyāmupānte viracitakalikādāmaśeṣāmaśeṣāṃ sampattiṃ mānayantaḥ kusumabalagaladbālatānāṃ latānām | sevyante hanta vṛndairavirataratayaḥ sundarīṇāṃ darīṇā- mantastvadbhaktibhājaḥ sitakarakiraṇairuttamāyāṃ tamāyām || 26|| hantā'hantāvṛtānāṃ maha iva rajanī bhāsamānaṃ samānaṃ jñānaṃ jñānandakāri glapayati vilasadbodhanāśā dhanāśā | vācā vācālabhāvaṃ tava vihitavatāṃ vāstavena stavena śreyaḥ śreyaskarastvaṃ bhava bhavasi vipadbhājanānāṃ janānām || 27|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``pādāntayamakastotraṃ'' nāmāṣṭāviṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 29. ekāntarayamakastotraṃ ekonatriṃśaṃ stotram udāravarṇairatha saṅgatairahaṃ mudābhidhāvadbhirupoḍhalakṣaṇaiḥ | padairamandadhvanibhirmaheśvaraṃ prabhuṃ prapadye turagottamairiva || 1|| śivena devyā jagṛhe karohita- strasanyadā kuṅkumapaṅkarohitaḥ | tadāsya yo'rkāgniniśākarohitaḥ stavaḥ sa vaḥ syādabhayaṅkaro hitaḥ || 2|| anañjanaṃ netravikāsakāraṇaṃ niraṅkuśaṃ karṇakareṇuvāraṇam | acandrikaṃ cittacakorapāraṇaṃ kriyādva īśārcanamārtidāraṇam || 3|| sukhākaroti klamahṛnna mādhava- stathāmarau vopavane'pi mādhavaḥ | yathā śarīrārdhaniruddhamādhavaḥ praśasyamāno bhagavānumādhvaḥ || 4|| dināntarātryāgamayorivāthavā surasravantīyamunaughayoriva | umāramākāmukayoḥ samāgamaḥ sitā'sitastāpamaghaṃ ca hantu vaḥ || 5|| umākhyamāsādya mahāniyo'gataḥ priyaṃ nidhiṃ saukhyamahāni yo gataḥ | karotu yuṣmākamahāni yogataḥ śubhānyasāviddhamahā niyogataḥ || 6|| dvijādhipādhiṣṭhitaśekharaṃ mahā- bhujaṃ gavinyastabharaṃ samudvahan | vapuḥ sadābhaṅgadayāsamāśritaṃ tanotu vaḥ sampadamacyutaḥ śivaḥ || 7|| aghadrumadhvaṃsamahākareṇavaḥ sudhāsitāḥ pāvakakalkareṇavaḥ | vasanti yasminnabhayaṅkare'ṇavaḥ karotu śaṃ tena haraḥ kareṇa vaḥ || 8|| dhṛtistvadīyena sudarśanena me bhavatyabhedastu hare kimucyate | parasparaṃ śaṅkarakṛṣṇayoridaṃ vacaḥ sukhāyaikamukhotthamastu vaḥ || 9|| na janma yasyādrinivāsa dāruṇaḥ sa te jvalatyakṣṇi śikhī sadāruṇaḥ | yamaṃ na kiṃ tena śiraḥsadā'ruṇa- stvadāśritaṃ kiṃ grasatāṃ sa dāruṇaḥ || 10|| sadā nagopāhitabandhurasthitiṃ stuve pinākena samedhitaśriyam | maharddhikaṃ sopaśame kṛtādaraṃ haraṃ hariṃ vā tarasā rasādaham || 11|| mano bhṛśaṃ bhrāmyati bāliśaṃ bhave jahāti bhaktiṃ ca divāniśaṃ bhave | ataḥ paraṃ nāma kimasya śaṃ bhave- nnivedayetsvaṃ yadi karma śambhave || 12|| samudrajanmānamupādadhatkare sitadyutiṃ vaktraniveśanocitam | rataḥ sadāskandakadarthanāhatau haro harirvā duritaṃ dhunoti vaḥ || 13|| jigīṣavaḥ kleśaparamparābhavaṃ vaneṣu bhikṣādhṛtakarparā bhavam | asoḍhavantaḥ kunṛpātparābhavaṃ bhajanti santaḥ stutitatparā bhavam || 14|| kadā dadhāno ghanaśāntiśobhinīṃ śubhāmbarālaṅkaraṇocitāṃ tanum | bhajāmyahaṃ dṛṣṭiniveśanaucitīṃ śaśīva tigmāṃśurivā'cyutasya te || 15|| kimāmravanyā sṛmarālavālayā priyākabaryā kimarālabālayā | saraḥśriyā kiṃ samarālabālayā dhṛteśabhaktirhyamarā'lavā'layā || 16|| kadā'navadyāmatinirmalāmahaṃ mahānadīnāṃ salilaiḥ prasādibhiḥ | vahāmi haṃsairupaśobhitāmbarāṃ prabhuprasādāccharadaṃ yathā tanum || 17|| prabhuṃ prapattuṃ sthalamehi mālayaṃ mahīdharaṃ mānasa vā himālayam | rasātale vaupayikāhimālayaṃ śrayantamanveṣaya yāhi mā layam || 18|| nidhāya cakṣurdahato manobhavaṃ na kāmahāniṃ pravitanvato dṛśā | anaṣṭamūrterdadhato'ṣṭamūrtitāṃ jayanti śambhorvividhā vibhūtayaḥ || 19|| samāśritastvāṃ karuṇāparā'ja yaḥ kvacinna tasyāsti raṇe parājayaḥ | pare tamārabdhaparasparājayaḥ śrayanti nāthaṃ dhṛtacāparājayaḥ || 20|| dhruvaṃ sa kṛṣṇastamadhaścakāra ya- ścirāya pakṣadvayakalpitasthitim | dvijādhirājaṃ vinatārtihāriṇaṃ bibharti yo mūrdhni sa tu tvamīśvaraḥ || 21|| vibhuṃ viriñco'pi na veda nāma yaṃ natasya duḥkhaṃ ghanavedanāmayam | nihanti tasyāpi bhavedanāmayaṃ śucaṃ bhajennāpyanivedanāmayam || 22|| samudrajāliṅgitakaṇṭhapīṭhaṃ sadaiva satyāhitasaktimacyutam | ananyagā yasya navoktimauktikai- ralaṅkaroti pracurā sarasvatī || 23|| abhīṣṭadāyī yamadhāmahodayād- dhvaniryayā śvetanṛpe mahodayā | dhṛtiṃ diśantī namatāmaho dayā kva sā tavāsmāsvadhunā mahodayā || 24|| ayamahaṃ puruṣottamamacyutaṃ balijitaṃ kṛtasatyaparigraham | acalitaśriyamāśritanandakaṃ dhṛtasudarśanamīśvaramāśraye || 25|| vitanvatī bhaktimatāṃ samānatāṃ bibharti yā kalpalatāsamānatām | kathaṃ dadhanmūrtimimāṃ samāntāṃ tava stutiṃ vacmi śataṃ samā na tām || 26|| iha paraśucitorjitākṛti- dvijapatiśekharatāṃ bibharti yaḥ | trijagati giriśaṃ satāṃ hitaṃ praṇamatarāmatanuṃ tamacyutam || 27|| yamaṃ yayārabdhamahāmahā'nayaḥ kṣayaṃ dṛśā yasya sa śarmahā'nayaḥ | dadāsi cettāmudito mahānayaḥ kṣatāśca vighnāḥ kṛtakāmahānayaḥ || 28|| analasambhṛtakānti dadhatsadā ruciramāracitāspadamīkṣaṇam | sumataye vidhuropakṛtipriyo bhavatu vo bhagavān bhagavāniva || 29|| na jātu tajjñāḥ kṛtino'vahanta yā- madhogatau kāraṇameva hanta yā | tvayi prasanne sumatāvahantayā na yāmi duḥkhaṃ narakāvahaṃ tayā || 30|| priyāṃ mukhe yo dhṛtapañcamasvarāṃ giraṃ vahantīmamṛtasya sodarām | viśeṣaviśrāntarucirbibharti māṃ vapuṣyasau puṣyatu vaḥ śivo'cyutaḥ || 31|| nutirmayeyaṃ bhajatāṃ hitāya te kṛtā'nayā śarma satāṃ hi tāyate | manasyapi glānirapohitā yate dhṛtā yadeṣā śrutisaṃhitāyate || 32|| ameyamahimā himādritanayā- nayāttahṛdayo dayorjitamatiḥ | vibhurbhavarujaṃ rujannavikalaṃ kalaṅkarahitaṃ hitaṃ diśatu vaḥ || 33|| udārakaruṇo'ruṇorjitamahā mahāhivalayo layojjhitavapuḥ | aghaughaśamano manodhṛtamudā- mudāttavibhavo bhavo bhavatu vaḥ || 34|| ekaḥ pādodakamadhiśiraḥ ślāghyamanyasya dhatte cakre pūjāṃ nayanakamalenā'parasya dvitīyaḥ | ityanyonyaṃ prakṛtimahatāmantarajñau guṇānāṃ harṣotkarṣaṃ kamapi kurutāṃ kāmakaṃsadviṣau vaḥ || 35|| yasminnadrisamudrajāvahanayorutsṛjya naisargikaṃ vairaṃ kesarikuñjarapravarayoḥ sauhārdahṛdyā sthitiḥ | yasminnapyahirājapannagabhujau nirvyājamaitrīyujau niṣpratyūhamasau mahāpuruṣayoḥ sandhirnibadhnātu vaḥ || 36|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``ekāntarayamakastotraṃ'' nāmaikonatriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 30. mahāyamakastotraṃ triṃśaṃ stotram śāradīmiva nadīṃ prasādinī- muccakairavasarojarājitām | stotumeṣa mama mūrtimaiśvarī- muccakairavasaro'jarājitām || 1|| rohiṇīramaṇakhaṇḍamaṇḍanaṃ nandinandinamanaṃ dinaṃ dinam | naumi bibhratamupoḍhakālikā- saṅgamaṃ galamasaṅgamaṅgalam || 2|| naumi bhaktajanakaṇṭhaniḥsara- nnādarañjitamakālakāmadam | kālakāmadamanādaraṃ jita- kleśamīśamamṛtāṃśuśekharam || 3|| bhrāmyatu draviṇatṛṣṇayā bhṛśaṃ mānasaṃ sadinamānasaṃsadi | tvatstavāmṛtamṛte tu dustare bandhuradhvani na bandhuradhvani || 4|| sādhu nātha nutirīpsayā mayā yā mayārcita kṛtātra sādhunā | sā dhunātu vipadaṃ bhavāmayā- yāmayāpanalasadrasā'dhunā || 5|| na me'bhibhūtasya pitā na mātā na vā sanābhirdhanavāsanābhiḥ | aristu rundhe suhṛdā viyuktaṃ samādhinā mānasamādhināmā || 6|| darpakāntaka virājamānayā- 'darpakāntakavirājamānayā | tvatprasādavidhilabdhayā dhiyā sādhavo dadhati vaibudhīṃ dhuram || 7|| yena śītakarakhaṇḍaśekhara tvatprasādavaśataḥ karotkaraḥ | ko'pi tāmarasabhāsano'rjitaḥ kopitā'marasabhāsanorjita || 8|| raviralaṅkurute navarañjanaṃ sa kila yattava dakṣiṇamīkṣaṇam | imamapāsya tamaḥ sahajaṃ śanai- raviralaṃ kuru tena varaṃ janam || 9|| mahatāmatāmasamahāvapuṣaṃ tava bhaktimarthitavatāṃ bhagavan | mahatāmatāmasamahāvapuṣaṃ prathayanti kīrtimiha siddhagaṇāḥ || 10|| adhyāsyate śamajuṣā bhavataḥ prasādā- dāmodarājitarucāru ciraṃ janena | dāmodarājitarucā rucirañjanena kīrṇaṃ tṛṇena mṛdunā vanamārtavena || 11|| tava savahariṇaṃ ghnatī maharṣiṃ yamakṛta cāpalatā navāsamādhim | punarapi dṛgalambhayattavainaṃ yamakṛtacāpalatānavā samādhim || 12|| sabhājane'nalparaternṛpasya tvadbhaktibhājaḥ prasabhājanena | sabhājanena praguṇena pūrṇā vibhāti niḥśreyasabhājanena || 13|| anantarā'yantritavāgbhavastvāṃ gṛṇāti yo nityamanantarāyam | anantarāyaṃ svayametya lakṣmī- rniṣevate taṃ samanantarāyam || 14|| saho mayādyairapi yasya durdharaṃ yamaḥ sa dhartuṃ hṛdi duḥsaho mayā | sahomayā'bhyetya bhaja prasannayā dṛśā kṛtānaṅgabhujāṃsahomayā || 15|| kale varaṃ dātumudīrite'sti yā sudhā suvākye tava niṣkale varam | kaleva raṅkvaṅkatanorasau kadā mamedamāpyāyayate kalevaram || 16|| sadānavāridviradā varūthinī hareriva dhvastasahiṃsadānavā | sadā navārāddhaśivā śivāptaye na kasya gīrbhaktivikāsadā navā || 17|| ghanairahantākṛtalaṅghanairahaṃ mahāribhirnirmalaśarmahāribhiḥ | nirākṛtaujā dhṛtahānirākṛtau na te'valepāvasaro nate'bale || 18|| manasyadoṣe'pyatidaurmanasyado mahārayaḥ pannagabhīmahāra yaḥ | tamantakampaikanimittamantakaṃ nayāśu bhaṅgaṃ hatadurnayāśubham || 19|| na vārabāṇā na hayā navāravā na dantinaḥ sadmani vā nadanti naḥ | kṣatāpadājñā tu vipakṣatāpadā jito bhavaḥ sādhu hi pūjito bhavaḥ || 20|| jalāśayā yānti mṛgā jalāśayā marāvalaṅghye ghnati pāmarā balam | paraṃ hasanto jitakoparaṃhasaṃ janā bhave'pyujjhitapūjanā bhave || 21|| amandarāgāśritamandarāgā- ste devajātāviha deva jātāḥ | ye siddhasādhyārcita siddhasādhyā ratā navaṃ tenuratānavaṃ te || 22|| sadaya modaya modayamokṣadaṃ kṛśamadaḥ śamadaḥ śamadaḥ kuru | na hi tatā hitatā''hitatāyanaiḥ kṛtanute tanu te tanute śubham || 23|| rasamaye samaye'samayehayā dhanamahīnamahīnamahīṣvapi | kṛtamudāttamudāttamudāhṛtaṃ tadidamāpadamāpa damāpaham || 24|| madanavādanavādanavāsanā- yatanayātanayā tanayā'mbudheḥ | akṛta vai kṛtavaikṛtavaiśasā sakamalā kamalā kamalāghavam || 25|| kamalayā'malayā malayādriva- ttrasadayāsadayā sadayāpyayā | pravaradhīvara dhīvara dhīrayā kalayamā'layamālayamāpadām || 26|| vitaraṇābharaṇā bharaṇābhaya- kṣamamanā mama nāma manāgapi | śubhavane bhavane bhava nepsita- prada ramā'daramādaramādadhe || 27|| anayato nayato na yato dhṛti- prada yamādayamādayamāśritaḥ | trasati śaṃsati śaṃsati śaṃ ca yo dhṛtamudaṃ tamudantamudañcaya || 28|| śubhavatā bhavatā bhavatāriṇā śakalitā'kalitā kalitāpabhūḥ | hara kṛtāntakṛtāntakṛtānta no kimamatā mamatā mama tādṛśī || 29|| viśadaśobhayaśobhaya śobhaya trijagadakṣamadakṣamadakṣama | svapadamānaya mānaya mā naya- kṣatasamakṣayamakṣayamakṣaya || 30|| ghanā'ghanāśanaiḥ śanairnavairnavairihā'rihā | bhavānbhavā'nvahaṃ vahannahīnahīnadānadāḥ || 31|| dayodayorjito'rjito mayomayocitaścitaḥ | yateya te hitehite ravairavairadhīradhīḥ || 32|| tavāttabādhane dhane gadaṃ gadanti ke'ntike | mayā''mayāvinā vinā vibho vibhojanā janāḥ || 33|| stavāstavā''hitā hitā na kena kevalaṃ balam | śubhā''śu bhāratī ratīśanāśanā''padāpadā || 34|| natānatānavānavāritāritāpadaṃ padam | harāharāmi te'mite śame śamevameva me || 35|| parā'parādhabāndhavāḥ savāsavāḥ surāsurāḥ | sadā sadānamānamāśrayaṃ śrayanti yanti yam || 36|| sa mā samāhitaṃ hitaṃ batā'vatādamandamam | kalaṅkalaṅghane ghane hyabāhyavāsanaḥ sa naḥ || 37|| alaṃ ghanā alaṅghanāstapasyatastapasyataḥ | tanurhi me'tanurhime'ṅgatānavaṃ gatā navam || 38|| malamalakṣavalakṣabalasmara- smaraṇakāraṇakāra kadaṅkadam | hara harasva bhajasva bhajan diśaṃ diśa vibhāsavibhāsadṛśaṃ dṛśam || 39|| bhavasambhavasaṃhatamohatamo- damanedamanekamaśaṅkamaśam | savikāsavikāracittaṃ racitaṃ hara me hara meduritaṃ duritam || 40|| kṛpaṇaṃ bhagavan bahuśo'bhihitaṃ bahuśobhi hitaṃ diśa me vacanam | diśameva ca nanditamānasa tāṃ ditamāna satāṃ na patāmi yataḥ || 41|| manyāmahe gatimṛte tvayi bhaktimanyā- manyāyagāṃ tava dṛśaiva tamaḥśamanyā | manyābhidhābhṛti natiṃ sahate dhamanyā- manyābhidheṣu nahi dhīrabhimānimanyā || 42|| mā'nārataṃ nijaparairupabhujyamānā mānātivṛttavibhavā'nvahamedhamānā | mā nātha bhūdbhavatu dhīrabhinandyamānā mānā'lasaiḥ suhṛdarātiṣu me samānā || 43|| doṣārayastaralayanti mahāmadoṣā doṣā dhṛtiṃ harati mohamayapradoṣā | doṣākarāṅkavapureṣyati māṃ kadoṣā doṣāttakaṇṭhamaniruddhamivonmadoṣā || 44|| kā rāmaṇīyakakṛtendukarānukārā- kārā vinā tava kṛpāṃ prathitopakārā | kārāgṛhe'tra bhavanāmani mocikā rā- kārājakhaṇḍaśikhara kṣapitāndhakārā || 45|| kāśāntacittadhṛtamuktipathā'vakāśā- kāśāntavartiravivat pracuraprakāśā | kāśāvakīrṇakhilatulyakṛtāntakāśā kā śāmbhavīṃ dṛśamṛte bhṛtasevakāśā || 46|| kāṃ tāpatāntimupayānti śucau na kāntāḥ kāntāvalambitakarāḥ skhalitāṃśukāntāḥ | kāntā haṭhādvanacarairmṛditālakāntāḥ kāntāragāstvadanuraktanṛpārikāntāḥ || 47|| māyā'rkaraśmipaṭalīṃ marukṣamāyā- māyāsamarpayati me duritakramā yā | māyāḥ padaṃ tava kṛpā'tra mahātamāyā- māyātyuṣeva hi kadā kalitottamā'yāḥ || 48|| rāmādisevyabhavabhaktibhṛto'bhirāmā- rāmāśritauṣadhiriva kṣatadustarāmā | rāmā satīva kṛtasādhuvipadvirāmā rā mānyamujjhati na sadma na cā'sthirā mā || 49|| vārānnidheriva sudhā tava durnivārā vārāṇasīva dṛgaghakṣayakṛddhruvārā | vārāṅganeva pṛtaneva ca sāśvavārā vārānuvāramudayatyurukūrcavārā || 50|| bhadrābhidhe gaja iveśamakḷptabhadrā bhadrāsane'rcitavataḥ kṛtabhālabhadrā | bhadrā sitā tithirivepsitadā vibhadrā bhadrā tanurguṇaviḍambitarāmabhadrā || 51|| nā'gādhamāpa tava hṛnmama dhīranāgā nāgālayaṃ surapurīva sakāñcanāgā | nā'gāt paratra ca sṛjantyakadarthanā gā nāgāśritendradigivonnatanandanāgā || 52|| sārāsahā'pi mama dhīstvayi mandasārā sārādhanā vihitamohatamo'bhisārā | sārāvakokilavacaḥsamasūktisārā sārāvalīva gurutāpakṛtāpasārā || 53|| sāmātyabhūpasadasīkṣitasūktisāmā sāmājikāhitanutiḥ kṛtaserṣyasāmā | sāmānyavartma na yayāśrayamojasā mā sā mānyatā tvayi vibho mucadañjasā mā || 54|| dhārā gireriva tarīva sakarṇadhārā- dhārā'rpaṇī tava dṛgūṣaravarṣadhārā | dhārāpurīva sukhadā duritāsidhārā dhārā parārtiharaṇe hataṣaḍvidhārā || 55|| kālāyasopamarucirgalabhūḥ sukālā kālāgnivaddṛgapi te kṣaṇadagdhakālā | kālā yathoktiramṛduḥ kṣatasevakālā kā lābhakṛnmama vinā''bhiranantakālā || 56|| muktārpitasvapadapūrṇakṛpā'vimuktā muktārcanādiratinā''rkibhayādvimuktā | muktāvalīva vimalā tvayi gīramuktā muktānyamārgagamanena mayeyamuktā || 57|| kalpāhvavalliriva dhautavipadvikalpā kalpāñcitā kṛtanutirbhavatīndukalpā | kalpākhyasūtravidurāgamadṛṣṭakalpā''- kalpākṣayā'stu mama gīramṛtānukalpā || 58|| sahasā'rka ivā'smi kṛtaḥ sahasā- 'sahasārabhṛdātmabhuvā sahasā | sa ha sāyakamasyati yā sahasā sahasādhvasametyapi duḥsahasā || 59|| janayā'śucamārtamabhājanayā- janayācanarañjanavejanayā | janayāmalakhinnamakhañjanayā- 'janayā'mṛtamātmaniyojanayā || 60|| śamanāya śucāṃ tvamumeśa manāk śamanārtikaraḥ kṛtabhīśama nā | śamanāmaya dehi vipāśamanā- śamanāthajanaprathitāśamanāḥ || 61|| madhunāśinā'rcita samaṃ madhunā madhunāmapuṣpajanuṣā madhunā | madhunā'lasāmiva vadhūmadhunā- madhunāplutāṃ tvayi giraṃ madhunā || 62|| vasu dhānyamujjhitumapīvasu dhā- va sudhāsitacchaviyaśovasudhā | vasudhātṛvandya yadasāvasudhā vasudhāma dṛktava naveva sudhā || 63|| samayāsiṣuḥ kva na vikāsamayāḥ samayāpatiṃ jagati yaṃ samayā | samayā bhavanti ca vilāsamayāḥ sa mayā girā'rcyata sudhāsamayā || 64|| kalikālatāmyadamṛtotkalikā kalikātare hṛdi navotkalikā | kalikā srajīva jitaśākalikā- 'kali kāntibhṛcca mukuṭe kalikā || 65|| kalayā''śritaṃ virujamekalayā kalayā vidhordalitapākalayā | kalayā girā ca sakalā'kala yā kalayā vinā vihitaśokalayā || 66|| paramārakā'ntakakṛtoparamā- 'paramānataṃ tava dṛśā''pa ramā | paramārthasadguṇaparampara mā paramārttamujjha karuṇāpara mā || 67|| kalakalakalakalakaṇṭhavadasmā- nava navanavanavarocitavācaḥ | bhava bhava bhavabhavabhītibhidasya- nmadamadamadamadanā'ntaka dūram || 68|| avikalakala kalakalakalakaṇṭhaṃ diśa navanavanavanavana varavacaḥ | savibhava bhava bhava bhavabhavabhayabhi- ddhara madamadamadamadamadayamimam || 69|| devyāṃ bhramadbhruvi jayāvijayārcitāyāṃ saktā tavā'stavijayā vijayāya dṛṣṭiḥ | vṛṣṭyeva bhūrdivijayā vijayākhyayā te mūrttyā trasadravijayā''vi jayāhvayā ca || 70|| haramupeta rasādamalaṃ ghanaṃ damalaṅghanaṃ tanuta mā kṛtinaḥ | tanutamākṛti naḥ śrayatā''dṛtaṃ śrayatādṛtaṃ bhavata ityuditam || 71|| śamitasaṅgamasajjanatāpadaṃ śamitasaṅgamasajjanatāpadam | namatakāmamahīnavibhāsitaṃ namata kāmamahīnavibhāsitam || 72|| kalitamohanamāravarājitaṃ smara haraṃ śikhicandrakalāñchitam | kalitamohanamāravarājitaṃ smaraharaṃ śikhicandrakalāñchitam || 73|| asau hṛdantarhitamoharodhane sadā yate rakṣa yaśo bhiyo jaya | asauhṛdaṃ tarhi tamoharo dhane sadāyaterakṣayaśobhi yojaya || 74|| sakalaśaṃ sakapālamalaṅkṛta- pramadamasthirasaṃ madanāśanam | bhavamadabhramahānidhane hitaṃ śamanamajjanamānamatā'layam || 75|| sakalaśaṃsakapālamalaṃ kṛta- pramadamasthirasammadanāśanam | bhavamadabhramahānidhanehitaṃ śamanamajjanamānamatālayam || 76|| tanuśaṅkaravairasamā'yatayā- 'tanu śaṅkara vai rasa mā'yatayā | tanu śaṃ karavai rasamāyatayā- 'tanuśaṃ kara vairasamāyatayā || 77|| prakāśakalitāpadaṃ śakalitāpadaṃ śaṃsatā- masārasamaye hitaṃ rasamayehitaṃ śaṅkaram | hṛdi smarata raṅgitaṃ smarataraṅgitaṃ śāntatāṃ nayantamasamānasantamasamānasaṃ cāntakam || 78|| iyaṃ vicitratāvirājitā mayā manoharā jitāmayā mano harā''hitā nutirdhinotu te | tvayi prasannamānase'samastamoharāśaye samastamoharāśaye karomi na spṛhāṃ punaḥ || 79|| kāntā kāntāramadhye saridiva sakulakṣmādharāyāṃ dharāyāṃ yātā yā tāratamyaṃ kva na vimalamatiprekṣaṇena kṣaṇena | sābhāsā bhāratīyaṃ tanuriva taraṇerandhakāre'ndhakāreḥ stutyā stutyā budhānāṃ madayatu hṛdayaṃ glānitāntaṃ nitāntam || 80|| varṣāvarṣāyamāṇā sahṛdayaśikhināṃ saṃhitānāṃ hitānāṃ dātrī dātrī tṛṇānāmiva lavanapaṭurduṣkṛtānāṃ kṛtānām | kalyā kalyāṇadāne nutiriyamaśubhaṃ tarjayantī jayantī viśvaṃ viśvambharāntaṃ prasaratu surabhīnandanasyandanasya || 81|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``mahāyamakastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ triṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 31. natopadeśastotraṃ ekatriṃśaṃ stotram manaḥ samādhau paramāntaraṅgaṃ vidhāya niḥspandamanuttaraṅgam | budhā vidhātuṃ bhavabhītibhaṅgaṃ vibhuṃ bhajadhvaṃ girijābhujaṅgam || 1|| pāśyāvaśeneva mahāvihaṅgaṃ valgābaleneva mahāturaṅgam | nirudhya yogena manaḥplavaṅgaṃ vibhuṃ bhajadhvaṃ girijābhujaṅgam || 2|| mantrauṣadhādikriyayā bhujaṅgaṃ yathā yathā vāgurayā kuraṅgam | manastathā''yamya dhiyā'stasaṅgaṃ vibhuṃ bhajadhvaṃ girijābhujaṅgam || 3|| bhittvā'likaṃ sabhrukuṭīvibhaṅgaṃ yasyā'gnirudyanrabhasādanaṅgam | dadāha taṃ mohatamaḥpataṅgaṃ vibhuṃ bhajadhvaṃ girijābhujaṅgam || 4|| vahantamuddāmabhujaṅgamaṅgaṃ jaṭābharaṃ nirbharanākagaṅgam | vilocanaṃ cāgniśikhāpiśaṅgaṃ vibhuṃ bhajadhvaṃ girijābhujaṅgam || 5|| bhavabandhabaddhavidhuroddharaṇaṃ phaṇimaṇḍalajvaladalaṅkaraṇam | vrajata kṣamādharadarīśaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ tuṣārakiraṇābharaṇam || 6|| kṛtaghasmarasmaranirākaraṇaṃ kaṭukālakūṭakavalīkaraṇam | vrajata prapannajanatāśaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ tuṣārakiraṇābharaṇam || 7|| marumedinīracitasañcaraṇaṃ tridaśendraśekharasaraccaraṇam | vrajata triduḥkhaharaṇasmaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ tuṣārakiraṇābharaṇam || 8|| praṇataṃ janaṃ jitajarāmaraṇaṃ racayantamāptabhavanistaraṇam | vrajatā''hitatripurasaṃharaṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ tuṣārakiraṇābharaṇam || 9|| avadhūtamohatimirāvaraṇaṃ karikṛttikalpitaparāvaraṇam | vrajata prakalpitapureśaraṇaṃ śaraṇaṃ tuṣārakiraṇābharaṇam || 10|| taruṇatamālamalīmasanālaṃ jvalanaśikhāpaṭalojjvalabhālam | śirasi lasatparameṣṭhikapālaṃ śrayata vibhuṃ hatakalmaṣajālam || 11|| naramukhakalpitaśekharamālaṃ natajanajambhitamohatamālam | nayanaśikhāśataśātitakālaṃ śrayata vibhuṃ hatakilviṣajālam || 12|| viṣamaviṣāgniśikhāvikarālaṃ phaṇipatihāramatīvaviśālam | galabhuvi bibhratamugrasirālaṃ śrayata vibhuṃ hatakalmaṣajālam || 13|| vidalayituṃ yamṛte bhavatālaṃ tribhuvanasīmani kaścana nā'lam | tamamalamānasavāsamarālaṃ śrayata vibhuṃ hatakilbiṣajālam || 14|| kamalaparāgapiśaṅgajaṭālaṃ jaladhisamarpaṇatarpitabālam | bhavabhaṭabhaṅgamahākaravālaṃ śrayata vibhuṃ hatakalmaṣajālam || 15|| atighasmarabhasmarajodhavalaṃ natalokasamarpitabodhabalam | dhvajadhāmavirājimahādhavalaṃ bhajata prabhumadrisutādhavalam || 16|| prabhayā paribhūtadaladgavalaṃ galamaṅgadaratnaśikhāśabalam | dadhataṃ viṣakḷptamahākavalaṃ bhajata prabhumadrisutādhavalam || 17|| śikharaṃ dyunadīlaharītaralaṃ galamūlamupoḍhamahāgaralam | dadhataṃ hṛdayaṃ ca sudhāsaralaṃ bhajata prabhumadrisutādhavalam || 18|| apanītakukarmakalaṅkamalaṃ natalokavitīrṇamahākamalam | dadataṃ śubhasiddhivipākamalaṃ bhajata prabhumadrisutādhavalam || 19|| dadataṃ vacanaṃ ghanahāsakalaṃ namatāṃ dalayantamaghaṃ sakalam | bhajatāṃ ca diśantamabhīṣṭaphalaṃ bhajata prabhumadrisutādhavalam || 20|| aviratanatiparasuravaraśikhara- praṇihitamaṇigaṇamasṛṇitacaraṇam | sitakarakarabharadhavalitamukuṭaṃ praṇamata puraharamaśaraṇaśaraṇam || 21|| bhavabhavaparibhavadhutavidhuradhiyā- madhigataśamadamaniyamitamanasām | abhimatavitaraṇapariṇatakaruṇaṃ praṇamata puraharamaśaraṇaśaraṇam || 22|| tanutṛṇagaṇanibhamanasijaśamana- praśamanaparicitahutavahamahitam | parahitakṛtamatimatimṛduhṛdayaṃ praṇamata puraharamaśaraṇaśaraṇam || 23|| dinakarahimakarahutavahanayanaṃ padakarakacabharadhṛtasitakiraṇam | vighaṭitanatajanaghanatamatamasaṃ praṇamata puraharamaśaraṇaśaraṇam || 24|| aviralajalabharasurasaridudaya- tsarasijabharanibhadhṛtanaraśirasam | bhavadavahutavahavidalanajaladaṃ praṇamata puraharamaśaraṇaśaraṇam || 25|| jahata kalpitakaluṣalocanatimirabhañjanamañjanaṃ tyajata duḥsthitahṛdayanandanamalayacandanarañjanam | bhajata nirjitaviṣamavaibhavabhavamahārṇavamajjanaṃ kṣitidharādhipa duhitṛvallabhacaraṇapaṅkajapūjanam || 26|| (kṣitidharāpatiputrikāpatipādapaṅkajapūjanam)|| 26|| sakalakalimalapaṭalapannaganigaḍakhaṇḍanapaṇḍitaṃ viśadaśaśadharaśakalaśobhitamukuṭamaṇḍanamaṇḍitam | hṛdayamīhitumabhayamunmadamadanadurnṛpadaṇḍitaṃ bhajatadustaraduritavāridhitara(vara)taraṇḍamakhaṇḍitam || 27|| jitasudhākaragirisutākarasarasijādaralālitaṃ natapurandararuciraśekharakusumakesararañjitam | druhiṇamādhavakumudabāndhavakamalinīdhavasevitaṃ vitara mūrdhani caraṇapaṅkajamamṛtaśīkaraśītalam || 28|| avaṭamajjanajanitatarjanavṛjinabhañjanasādhanaṃ kṛtanamajjanahṛdayarañjanaciranirañjanapūjanam | tripuramāraṇaduritadāraṇadaranivāraṇakāraṇaṃ vitara mūrdhani caraṇapaṅkajamamṛtaśīkaraśītalam || 29|| idamakṛtrimarasamasambhṛtabahuvidhauṣadhasādhanaṃ stutirasāyanamayamupāyanamanugṛhāṇa gṛhāṇa me | varamudāhara varamudā hara paramadāharujāharaṃ vitara mūrdhani caraṇapaṅkajamamṛtaśīkaraśītalam || 30|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``natopadeśastotraṃ'' nāmaikatriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 32. śaraṇāgatoddharaṇaṃ dvātriṃśaṃ stotram bhavamarubhramaviṣamasambhramasamuditaklamaviklavaṃ kuliśakarkaśahṛdayadurjanakṛtaparābhavaviplavam | atibhayaṅkararavijakiṅkaravikṛtahuṅkṛtikātaraṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 1|| kṛtaniketanamakaraketanadalitacetanavetanaṃ lalitalocanavaravadhūjanavacanatarjanabhājanam | guṇalavodgatagurumadajvarajanitatīvrarujāturaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 2|| pramukhapeśalaviṣamavaiśasaviṣayapāśavaśīkṛtaṃ prakṛtidurgrahaguruparigrahanibiḍapīḍitavigraham | jvaladanargalabhavadavānalakavalitākulacetasaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 3|| pavanavellitakamalinīdalatalacalajjalacañcalaṃ vibhavayauvanasutasukhādikamitivivekavisaṃsthulam | balavadindriyakapaṭataskarahaṭhaviluṇṭhanavihvalaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 4|| samadanandanamadanamardana duritatardanalolubhaṃ bhuvanabhāvana paramapāvana sudṛḍhabhāvanamānatam | śaśikalāñchitamukuṭalāñchita viphalavāñchitamākulaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 5|| jagadanugrahamahitavigraha kṛtaparigrahasadgrahaṃ tripuraśāsana śabalavāsanamasadupāsanalālasam | ghanacamatkṛtikṛtanamaskṛtimucitasatkṛtisaspṛhaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 6|| varada nandaya vipadamardaya kimiti nirdayatedṛśī kṛtanivedanamatulavedanamuditakhedanavāpadam | diśa yaśodhana hṛdayaśodhanavimalabodhanadīṃ dṛśaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 7|| abhayamarpaya kapaṭamalpaya śirasi kalpaya me padaṃ mukhamudañcaya vacanamañcaya varada vañcaya mā natam | bhṛśamaviśramakṛtapariśramaśatamatiśramaniḥsahaṃ caturamuddhara hara jagaddharamaśaraṇaṃ śaraṇāgatam || 8|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``śaraṇāgatoddharaṇaṃ'' nāmakaṃ dvātriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 33. karṇapūrastotraṃ trayastriṃśaṃ stotram kāñcīkāñcanakiṅkiṇīkalakalaḥ śiñjānamañjīrajo jhāṅkāraḥ sakalāṅgabhūṣaṇamaṇiśreṇījhaṇāḍambaraḥ | vāgdevyāḥ pracalaskha (pracalocchalat)ladbhujalatākṣepakvaṇatkaṅkaṇa- kvāṇaścaṅkamaṇakrame vijayate candrārdhamauleḥ stavaḥ || 1|| svāmin vāṅmayadevatā bhagavatī svecchāvihārakriyā- krīḍākānanamānanaṃ bhava bhavadbhaktasya nūnaṃ vyadhāt | nocennūtananūtanaḥ pratidinaṃ hṛdyaḥ samudyankramā- dasminnujjvalavarṇakomalapadanyāsaḥ kathaṃ lakṣyate || 2|| svairaṃ kairaviṇīkuṭumbakalikālaṅkāra sārasvata- sphārasvārasikaprasādaviśadasvādhīnavāgdevatāḥ | dhanyāḥ satkavayastava stavanibhāttvadbhaktibhājāṃ vipa- ttāpā'pākṛtaye diśanti śiśirasnigdhāḥ sudhāvipruṣaḥ || 3|| yasya tvannamanaiḥ śirodaśaśatī saundaryasandarśanai- ścāritraśravaṇotsavaiśca bhavataścakṣuḥsahasradvayam | sāphalyaṃ rasanāsahasrayugalaṃ tvatkīrtanaiścāśnute trailokyādbhutamūrtaye bhagavate śeṣāya tasmai namaḥ || 4|| rākendorapi mādhavādapi satāṃ saṅgādapi svāminaḥ sammānādapi kāminīkucayugābhogopabhogādapi | śambho śarva śaśāṅkaśekhara śiva śrīkaṇṭha viśveśvara trāyasveti satāṃ haranti hṛdayaṃ sāndrāmṛtārdrā giraḥ || 5|| śyāmākāmukamādhavādivirasaṃ nāsīrakastūrikā- kāśmīrādinirādaraṃ malayajālepāvalepāvaham | kurvanti pravidhūtanūtanavadhūgāḍhāṅgasaṅgaspṛhaṃ cetaḥ kasya na śāmbhavastavasudhāsiktāḥ satāṃ sūktayaḥ || 6|| yasyaitāḥ stavasūktayastava mukhe khelanti helājita- jvālājālajaṭālakālarasanāsaṃrambhasambhāvanāḥ | valgantyasya puraḥ purandarapurīkāntākaṭākṣacchaṭā- bāṇaśreṇiśaravyadivyavapuṣaḥ svarvandivṛndoktayaḥ || 7|| harṣotkarṣavivarddhinīḥ pariṇatakṣaudradravaspardhinī- rdhanyānāṃ madhurāstava stavagiraḥ karṇe ciraṃ kurvatām | māndyaṃ vindati nandanenduvadanāsandigdhamugdhādhara- pronmīlanmadhubindusundarasudhāsandohado dohadaḥ || 8|| sadvidyābhyasanaḥ sabhānivasanaḥ saudhāsanādhyāsanaḥ śuddhānnagrasanaḥ sudhautavasanaḥ satsādhvasadhvaṃsanaḥ | sahlādollasanaḥ prasannahasanaḥ sampannasadvāsanaḥ satkāvyavyasanaḥ sudhārdrarasanaḥ śambhoḥ kṛtopāsanaḥ || 9|| rākākāntarucaḥ kṣatākhilaśucaḥ pīyūṣadhārāmucaḥ svāntaklāntihṛtaścamatkṛtikṛtaḥ saṅgītabhaṅgībhṛtaḥ | śambhorambudanādavihvalavaladbālāṅganāliṅgana- hlādasvādasukhaspṛhāmiha jahattyantarmṛśantaḥ stutīḥ || 10|| sārāsāravidaḥ satāṃ bhayabhidaḥ prahvopatāpacchidaḥ kāruṇyārdrahṛdaḥ prasannasuhṛdaḥ sphārībhavatsaṃvidaḥ | trātāśeṣaviśaḥ prakāśitadiśaḥ kīrtyā mahīnirviśaḥ karṣantīśa niśaḥ prasaktasudṛśastvatpādapīṭhaspṛśaḥ || 11|| durdharṣarddhipuṣaḥ saharṣavapuṣastarṣaprakarṣapluṣaḥ sarvotkarṣajuṣaḥ kṣaṇakṣataruṣaḥ kalyāṇapūrṇāyuṣaḥ | utsarpatsahasaḥ samiddhamahasaḥ kṣiptorjitānehasa- ścittāntaprahasaḥ sukhāptarahasastvaddhyānadhautāṃhasaḥ || 12|| kālaṃ bālakuraṅgaketanakṛtottaṃsapraśaṃsāmṛta- syandāsvādavinodanairyadanayanniḥspandamandaṃ manaḥ | tasyānyatra kavikrame kamalinīkiñjalkapānotsava- vyagrasyeva madhuvratasya kusume'nyasminkathaṃ syādratiḥ || 13|| khaṭvāṅge mukuṭe kare śravaṇayoḥ prāyeṇa yo bhūṣaṇaṃ brahmopendrapuraḥsarāmaraśiraḥśreṇiṃ bibharti prabhuḥ | tatpādāmbujabhaktibhāvitamatirdhanyaḥ śirobhūṣaṇa- khyātiṃ niścitamaśnute tribhuvanapraṣṭhapratiṣṭhājuṣām || 14|| rohanmohamahīruhoruparaśurdurvāramārajvara- ploṣollāghabhiṣagviṣaughaviṣamakleśograśāpāvadhiḥ | tāmyallocanacakravākamithunabradhnodayaścandrikā- pūraścittacakorakasya jayati śrīkaṇṭhapūjāvidhiḥ || 15|| arcāṃ vīkṣya vicitracāruracanāṃ candrārdhacūḍāmaṇe- rvyaktiṃ bhakticamatkṛtiḥ kṛtadhiyo yasyaiti citte muhuḥ | tasminsaspṛhamarpitāḥ sacakitāḥ sācīkṛtāḥ sasmitāḥ sākūtāśca patanti pakṣmaladṛśāṃ premāmṛtārdrā dṛśaḥ || 16|| svāmin saumanasaṃ nibadhya vapuṣi sragdāma dṛgdāmabhi- rbhasmībhāvitamanmathasya bhavato bhindanti bhaktispṛśaḥ | dolāndolanavihvalenduvadanādoḥkandalīcandana- syandānandanimīlitārdhanayanāstāpavyathāṃ mānmathīm || 17|| svāmin yastava pādapaṅkajayugaṃ bhaktyā'bhyaṣiñcanmuhuḥ pūjānteṣu namannamandamuditānandāśruleśotkaraiḥ | tasyāṅghrī lalitākṣipakṣmapaṭalaprāntasrutārṇaḥkaṇa- śreṇībhiḥ snapayantyanaṅgavigalanmānāḥ kuraṅgīdṛśaḥ || 18|| tvāmakṣāmaśubhānubhāvavibhavaṃ bhālāgnikīlāvalī- saṃrambhādabhiyoktumakṣamatayā sākṣādupekṣya smaraḥ | nūnaṃ hanti nirantaraṃ bhava bhavatsevaikahevākinaṃ karṇābhyarṇavalatkaṭākṣaviśikhaśreṇībhireṇīdṛśām || 19|| ādau bhaktivayasyayā paricayānnītonmukhatvaṃ śanai- rārūḍhā viṣameṣuvartmasu ciraṃ bhrāntā'tha tānteḥ padam | dūtīkṛtya navānavadyavacasaṃ devīṃ puro bhāratī- meṣā tvāmupagantumicchati patiṃ proddāmakāmā matiḥ || 20|| dhūmodgāragabhīraghasmaravapurnirbhartsitārkaprabhaṃ sphūrjatphūtkṛtakarburīkṛtasitaśrīkāntadehadyuti | grāsīkarttumudagravigrahagaladvahnisphuliṅgaṃ viṣaṃ ko jagrāha kare'mareśvaranutastvāmantareṇā'paraḥ || 21|| krodhodbhrāntakṛtāntakiṅkarakaradroṇīmukhapreṅkhita- vyālāliṅgitakandharaḥ prakaṭayannākrandadīnāṃ giram | cakṣurdikṣu vidikṣu ca kṣatadhṛtirnikṣipya rakṣākṣamaṃ kāṅkṣankaṃ śaraṇaṃ vṛṇoti maraṇe tvāmantareṇāturaḥ || 22|| varṣantī bhavadoṣapoṣaparuṣaploṣapramoṣakṣamaṃ pīyūṣaṃ viśadāṃśu(ḍaśanāṃśu)bhirdaśa diśatkāśaprakāśā diśaḥ | karṣantī viṣamaṃ tamaḥ pramathitālokasya lokasya gī- ścāndrī mūrdhni kaleva deva bhavato vaktre vidhattāṃ padam || 23|| yatparyāptakṛpāvipākavikasanmādhuryadhuryaṃ tava svāntaṃ bhīmabhavopatāpavipadi sphītā'vahelaṃ mayi | svāminneṣa vidhirmamaiva vidhuro dūrādhvakhinno jana- stīrādratnanidhervyapaiti viphalaḥ svaireva duṣkarmabhiḥ || 24|| yatsaundaryasamudrasāndralaharīhelācalaccāmara- vyagrāṅgāṅgulibālamālavavadhūdṛkpātapātraṃ vapuḥ | sevāsannidhiśaṃsisambhramanamatsāmantamaulisthalī- līḍhāṅghridvayamudvahanti kṛtinaḥ saubhāgyabhāgyāspadam || 25|| yacca preṅkhadakharvagarvaghaṭitabhrūbhaṅgabhīmākṛti- kṣmābhṛtpāśamukhāvalokanaghanaprollaṅghanābhīrubhiḥ | unmīlanmṛduśādvale tarutale svarllokakallolinī- kūle mūlaphalāśanaiḥ śamasudhāsvādārthibhiḥ sthīyate || 26|| yaccā'sminbhavaḍambare pariṇamanmandānilāndolana- vyālolannalinīdalāñcalacalaprāleyaleśopame | duṣkālavyasanāvasannajanatāsantāpanirvāpaṇa- vyāpāraikasukarmanirmalaphalārambhaiḥ sukhaṃ jīvyate || 27|| niḥśaṅkaṃ vikalaṅkamaṅkavikasallakṣmīkaṭākṣekṣitaṃ yanmānuṣyamupetya nityamuditā nandanti dantivrajaiḥ | yaccānte puruhūtavāravanitāgītāmṛtākarṇana- pronmīlatpulakāvakīrṇavapuṣaḥ svarmadhyamadhyāsate || 28|| so'yaṃ sarvajagatprabhoraśaraṇatrāṇaikahevākinaḥ kāruṇyāmṛtasāgarasya girijābhartuḥ paro'nugrahaḥ | kastaṃ na stutibhirvimarśarasikaḥ prauḍhārpitaprītibhiḥ prāptuṃ śarmadakarmanirmalaphalaṃ nandatyamandādaraḥ || 29|| dṛṣṭiḥ pīyūṣavṛṣṭirmadhuramadhurasasyandinī deva vāṇī pāṇī tvatpādapīṭhīparimalanarajorājimaitrīpavitrau | cetaḥ svacchandacaryāpariṇatakaruṇārāmaviśrāmadhāma tvāmakṣāmaprasādāmṛtajaladhimaho bhejuṣāmeṣa pākaḥ || 30|| tasyaikasyāṅghripīṭhaṃ sphuṭamukuṭamaṇiprauḍharociḥpratānaiḥ kṣoṇīpālāḥ śirobhiḥ karapuṭaghaṭitairañjasā rañjayanti | dhatte dhanyaḥ sa caikaḥ sitaruciruciracchatraśubhrottarīyāṃ lakṣmīmuddāmarāmākarakamalacalaccāmarodārahārām || 31|| taṃ vāṇībhirgṛṇanti śravaṇapuṭasudhāsyandinībhirmunīndrā gītairgāyanti vidyādharavaravanitāstasya citraṃ caritram | vidvadgoṣṭhīṣu tasya prasarati kṛtino dānadākṣiṇyavārtā kīrtirjāgarti tasya pravarakavivacobhaṅgisanmaṅgaleṣu || 32|| kiṃ vā'nyannaiṣa paśyatyalamanalaśikhāpiṅgajihvāsphuliṅga- sphūrjaddaṃṣṭrākarālaṃ bhrukuṭikuṭilitaṃ bhīṣaṇaṃ kālavaktram | svāminmandānilāndolitalalitalatānṛttakānte vanānte śānterṣyastvāmavidyājaḍajagadagadaṅkāramārādhayedyaḥ || 33|| ākarṇākṛṣṭacāpaḥ praharati nibhṛtaṃ nirnimittāpakārī nārīnetrāntatiryagvivalanaviśikhaśreṇibhiḥ puṣpacāpaḥ | phūtkārasphāraphālaḥ sphuradurugaralajvālajihvājaṭālaḥ kālavyālaḥ karālaḥ kavalayati vapurhantukāmaḥ kva yāmaḥ || 34|| tasmādasmākamākasmikavikasadasatkarmapākopatāpa- vyāpattāpāturāṇāmaviralakaruṇāsindhurāpannabandhuḥ | bhaktiśraddhāprabandhānamadamaraśiraḥśreṇimāṇikyamālā- jvālālīḍhāṅghripīṭhaḥ śaraṇamaśaraṇatrāṇaśīlastvamekaḥ || 35|| yā niḥśeṣauṣadhīnāṃ janirajani punarna kvacitkampasampa- tsamparko yatra yatra sthitirupari paribhraṃśabhājāṃ janānām | eṣā śeṣāhipīṭhaprakaṭitavasatiḥ sampadāṃ bhūtadhātrī pātrīkurvatyajasraṃ janamanaghamaghaḥ prakramaste namaste || 36|| saṃsāre'sminnasāre paramiha kuśalaṃ karma dharmapradhānaṃ dharmaḥ śarmaprado'pi prabhavati sudhiyāṃ siddhaye śuddhihetoḥ | śuddhau baddhaspṛhāṇāṃ na bhavati kṛtināṃ yadvinā''padvināśa- strailokyāpyāyakaṃ tajjalamapi bhagavan vibhramaste namaste || 37|| yaṃ muktvā jīvayantaṃ jagadagadamadaḥ santataṃ santamanta- rjantūnāṃ śītabhītiprakaṭitavipadāmasti na svastihetuḥ | gīrvāṇānāṃ havirbhirglapayati vipadaṃ yajvanāmapyanalpaiḥ saṅkalpaiḥ kalpitairyaḥ sa bhavati vibhavaḥ pāvakaste namaste || 38|| antaḥ santiṣṭhamānaḥ sthagayati jagatāṃ pañcatāṃ pañcadhā yaḥ sandhāya sthāyibhāvaṃ prasarati satataṃ yatra tejasvicakram | yatra sthairyaṃ bibharti tribhuvanabhavanaṃ bibhradādhārabhūtāṃ bhūtānāṃ mūrtimeṣa prathayati vibhutāṃ mārutaste namaste || 39|| yatra brahmāṇḍapiṇḍaḥ prasarati saralālābutumbīviḍambī sthairyaṃ jhāṅkāri vāri prathayati tadapi skandhabandheṣu yasya | so'pi sphāreṇa bhartuṃ prabhavati pavano yasya noddeśaleśaṃ dhāmnāmādhārabhūtaṃ bhava bhavati vapustannabhaste namaste || 40|| dhātuścāturyabhājo janajananavidhau yā mukhebhyaścaturbhyaḥ sākaṃ nākasthitānāmajaniṣata kṛtaprītayaḥ sphītabhāsām | tāsāmāsāṃ śrutīnāṃ janayati niyataṃ karmabhiḥ śarmakṛdbhiḥ sāphalyaṃ yaḥ sa yajvā vapuradhṛtavipatsaṅgamaste namaste || 41|| preṅkhadbhiryanmayūkhairvidadhati dhavale nirjarāḥ prāṇayātrāṃ proddāmānandadhāma prathayati bahule pāraṇaṃ yaḥ pitṝṇām | kurvannurvantarikṣaṃ praśamitatimiraṃ yaḥ samastauṣadhīnāṃ pīnāṃ puṣṇāti bhātiṃ tanuratanurasau candramāste namaste || 42|| prātaḥ prābhañjane'sminpathi pathikamiva dhvāntakāntāratāmya- llokālokārpaṇārthaṃ pramuditamuditaṃ yaṃ samarcanti santaḥ | sāyaṃ dhyāyanti sandhyāvidhimadhi sudhiyo bādhitādhiṃ samādhiṃ sādhimnā'dhiṣṭhitāyaṃ tvamiha sa mihiraḥ sadgabhaste namaste || 43|| digdeśākārakālairakalitavibhavaṃ yanmahadbījabhūtaṃ bhūtagrāmasya yasya tribhuvanaviṣayaṃ vastujātaṃ vivarttaḥ | yasminhemnīva nānābharaṇaparikaro līyate viśvamante tadbhinneṣvapyabhinnaṃ bhava bhavasi paraṃ brahma tasmai namaste || 44|| itthaṃ matsūktayaste śaśadharaśikhara sphārasārasvataugha- pronmīladvaktraśuktiskhaladamalamilanmauktikavyaktibhājaḥ | tīvrāpattāpatāmyatsahṛdayahṛdayaklāntiśāntipragalbhā- darbhāgrasparddhibuddhigrathitadṛḍhaguṇāḥ karṇapūrībhavantu || 45|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``karṇapūrastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ trayastriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 34. agryavarṇastotraṃ catustriṃśaṃ stotram sarpatkandarpadarpajvarabharaharaṇavyagravarcaḥprapañca- pratyagrabradhnacandrajvaladanalavalatpakṣmalatryakṣavaktraḥ | śarvastarṣaprakarṣaśramaśamanamanastarpaṇasvarṇavarṣa- svasthaṃ tanvansaharṣaṃ janamanaghamaghaḥ kalpayatvakṣayaṃ vaḥ || 1|| yadvadvandyaṃ prasannaṃ lasadasamarasaspandasandarbhagarbhaṃ maṅgalyaṃ narmanaddhaṃ tava vacanamadaḥ śasyamasyatkalaṅkam | tadvadbhargasya varyaṃ śaśadharaśakalaṃ dyatvavadyaṃ kaparda- nyastaṃ vaktraṃ praśastaṃ prabalatamatamaḥkhaṇḍanaṃ maṇḍanaṃ vaḥ || 2|| ṣaṭcakrasthaḥ ṣaḍadhvaprasarasarabhasaḥ sargabandhapragalbhaḥ pratyagraprahvanavyastavapaṭhanaparabrahmasaccakraśakraḥ | dakṣakratvantakatvaṃ dadhadadhamamadadhvaṃsalakṣyapraśaṃsaḥ saṃsargadhvastapaṅko gaṇagaṇamacalaṃ kalpayanhantvaśaṃ vaḥ || 3|| vakṣaḥsadmasthapadmaṃ karakamalatalaprajvalacchaṅkhacakraṃ kaṃsaghnaṃ sarpatalpaṃ khagavaravahanaṃ nandayatyardhagaṃ yaḥ | dharmaṃ badhnandhvajasthaṃ karagatakalaśaṃ varṣma yaśca vratasthaṃ śaṃsantaṃ saṃsmarantaṃ natamanavarataṃ so'vyayaḥsyatvaghaṃ vaḥ || 4|| saṃrakṣanbhaktavargaṃ yamabhaṭabhayataḥ sabhyamabhyarṇalabhyaṃ dhanyammanyaṃ vadanyaṃ praṇayaparavaśaṃ parṣadagryavyavastham | varṣatvacchinnacañcadgaragavalagalaḥ kastharaṅgattaraṅga- svargaṅgaḥ śaśvadaṅkasthalagatanagajastryambakaḥ sampadaṃ vaḥ || 5|| ambhaḥkampraṃ kaṭapraṃ sabahalagaralaṃ pannagaṃ kaṇṭhalagnaṃ grathnanmahyamnabhasvatkharakaradahanasvarkṣapatyambaratvam | skandhasthaṃ carma bharmaprabhamalakacayaṃ candanatvaṃ prapannaṃ pratyaṅgaṃ bhasma saptacchadadaladhavalaṃ syatvajaḥ kalmaṣaṃ vaḥ || 6|| sadyaḥ sanyastagarvagrahamahatamahastyaktasaṅgaprasaṅgaṃ sattvasthaṃ labdhatattvaṃ malaśabalagalatsarvasambandhabandham | yatsamparkaprayatnakṣamamalayadayaṃ tathyapathyaprasaktaṃ yacchatvacchaṃ manastatsmaraharacaraṇadvandvanamrasya śaṃ vaḥ || 7|| satyaṃ naśyatyavaśyaṃ ghanamaghapaṭalaṃ yatpadasparśabaddha- śraddhasya spaṣṭakaṣṭapraśamanamanasaḥ kasya na vyaktakalkam | tasya vyasyatvaśaṃ vaḥ sitakaraśaraṇaṃ mastakaṃ dhvastakampaṃ sampatsamparkaramyaprabhamabhayakarasyarṣabhasyandanasya || 8|| atyantasvacchamantaḥkaraṇamaśaraṇaprattarakṣaṃ samakṣaṃ vyañjanbhañjannajasraṃ nayanatavadanastambhasaṃrambhadambham | sarvajñaḥ sattvasaṅghaklamakaraṇacaṇaṃ janmakarmaprabandhaṃ mathnannatyarthamarthaṃ kṣatasakalamalaṃ vardhayatvavyayaṃ vaḥ || 9|| galvarkaprasthapastyaṃ dharamathamalayaṃ mandaraṃ sahyamanta- rnandadgandharvayakṣaṃ sakanakakaṭakaṃ kalpatarvantaraṅgam | bhadraṃ saṅkrandanasya prahasanasadanaṃ nandanaṃ svargaraṅgaṃ gacchansvacchandacaryaḥ parabaladalanastarpayatvanvahaṃ vaḥ || 10|| padmasthaṃ padmahastaṃ gajavaravadanaṃ nandanaṃ skandasaṃjñaṃ parjanyaṃ haṃsamabjaṃ daśaśatanayanaṃ havyabhakṣaṃ sadaṇḍam | rakṣaḥprakhyaṃ jalasthaprathamatha pavanaṃ martyapattraṃ makhaghnaṃ sampaśyatyatyajantaṃ caraṇatalamalaṃ yaḥ sa karṣatvaghaṃ vaḥ || 11|| avyaktaṃ yaḥ samagraṃ jagadaganagaraṃ vyañjayatyabjajaḥ sa- nyaḥ saṃrakṣatyanantaḥ smarayamadamanaḥ saṃharatyakramaṃ yaḥ | sa trayakṣastantramantrapraṇayanasaphalagranthakarmaṇyakharva- jñatvaḥ sadgamyavartmaprakaṭanaparamaḥ sparśayatvadvayaṃ vaḥ || 12|| draṣṭavyaṃ samyagarthapravacanaparamaṃ śarmadaṃ padyabaddhaṃ praṣṭhaprajñapraśasyaṃ namadamaravaraḥ śaṅkaraḥ saṅkaraghnaḥ | varṣantaṃ bhagnagharmaṃ pramadamayapayaḥ satyasaṅkalpajalpa- śravyaṃ bhavyaṃ vasavyaṃ navamavagamayatvagryavarṇastavaṃ vaḥ || 13|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``agryavarṇastotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ catustriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 35. īśvarapraśaṃsāstotraṃ pañcatriṃśaṃ stotram anāthānāṃ nātho gatiragatikānāṃ vyasanināṃ vinetā bhītānāṃ śaraṇamadhṛtīnāṃ bharavaśaḥ | suhṛdbandhuḥ svāmī śaraṇamupakārī varaguruḥ pitā mātā bhrātā trijagati jayatyantakaripuḥ || 1|| udārairmandārairacitaśikharaṃ candraśikharaṃ samabhyarcya premṇā vipulapulakālaṅkṛtatanuḥ | kadā gandhābandhapramadamuditoddāmamadhupa- sphuradguñjāgarbhairvibhumabhibhajeyaṃ nutipadaiḥ || 2|| ito dvandvakleśā viṣayamṛgatṛṣṇāsthitirito jarāmṛtyuvyādhipratibhayamitaḥ sarvasulabham | mahāmohairghorairupahatamito bodhalasitaṃ kathaṃ kuryādāryaḥ kṛtamatirapi svātmani hitam || 3|| aśeṣakleśaughaglapanaparipanthī prakaṭaya- nnayaṃ vighnavrātaḥ prabalavipadāpādanavidhim | vivekākhyaṃ cakṣustirayati satāṃ yena sahasā bhavaśvabhre pātaḥ pratipadamadabhraḥ prabhavati || 4|| bhavadbhaktiṃ tasya vyupaśamasamarthāmatha dṛśaḥ prasādaṃ tanvānāṃ ghanamahasamāsādya sudhiyaḥ | prakāśātmānaṃ tvāmativimalayā haṃsamuditaṃ dṛśā sākṣātkṛtya pratijahati mohāndhatamasam || 5|| anitye nityāśāmaśucini śucitvavyasanitā- manātmanyātmāsthāmatha mahati duḥkhe sukhamatim | caturdhā durbhedyāmaviratamavidyāṃ pariṇatāṃ hatāśeṣasvābhāmabhidadhati mūlaṃ bhavataroḥ || 6|| narāstattvāloke niyatamanayā dūṣitadṛśo vivekapradhvaṃsādvidadhati bhave kandukagatim | upāsābhirlabdhvā bhavabhayabhidaṃ nirmaladhiyaḥ samādhiṃ sādhimnā dadhati na punarjanmavipadam || 7|| cakāśe nākāśe raviraviralairaṃśupaṭalai- ramandābhairindustimiramaharannāpi kiraṇaiḥ | na cānyannakṣatragrahadahanaratnauṣadhitaḍi- tpradīpādijyotiḥ kvacidapi purā nātha dadṛśe || 8|| tamobhūtaṃ viśvaṃ kimapi gahanaṃ dhāma tadabhū- datha svecchāśaktiprakaṭitamahāvaibhavabharam | vibhajyātmānaṃ kṣmāvanapavanavahnīndutapana- svakhairaṃśairīśa trijagadasṛjatkastvadaparaḥ || 9|| anādau saṃsāre vidadhati rajobādhitadhiyaḥ śubhaṃ vā ghoraṃ vā śabalamatha vā kṛtyamaṇavaḥ | tatastadbhogārthaṃ taruṇakaruṇāpūrṇahṛdayo vidhatse yatteṣāṃ tanubhuvananirmāṇamakhilam || 10|| tadetatsaṅkalpaprakaṭitasamastatrijagataḥ prabhorlīlāmātraṃ bhuvanamahanīyasya bhavataḥ | tavaikasya svāminyadiha sahaje sarvaviṣaye kriyājñāne nitye karaṇanirapekṣe prabhavataḥ || 11|| prasiddho'yaṃ panthā na bhavati vicitrā viracanā vinā yatkartāraṃ sa ca na bhavati jñānarahitaḥ | ato'vaśyaṃ kartā trijagati vicitre jña ucitaḥ sa ca tvaṃ tvayyanye kimiva vivadante hatadhiyaḥ || 12|| athaivaṃ cedbrūyuḥ kimayamaparapreritamatiḥ svatantro vā devastribhuvanavidhāne prayatate | amuṣyādye pakṣe nahi paravidheyasya vibhutā parasminpakṣe vā phalamapi kimuddiśya yatate || 13|| athāsyeyaṃ vāñchā prabhavati na karmakṣayamṛte nṛṇāṃ muktiḥ so'pi kvacana na vinā bhogamucitaḥ | vinādhāraṃ bhogo na bhavati vapurnāpi bhuvanaṃ tato'rhaṃ jantūnāṃ tanubhuvananiṣpādanamiti || 14|| idaṃ yuktaṃ sāndrāmṛtamadhurayā'ntaḥ karuṇayā prayuktasyā'jasraṃ parahitavidhānavyasaninaḥ | dayāluścellokaṃ sṛjati sakalaṃ kiṃ na sukhinaṃ kuto vā''dhivyādhikṣata iha jano'nena janitaḥ || 15|| athopādānaṃ yadbhavati paramāṇvādi jagata- stathā karmā'nehaḥprabhṛti sahakāryetadubhayam | vinā sṛṣṭau naiṣa prabhavati yadīśaḥ kimamunā tadevā'stu vyaktaṃ tanubhuvananirmāṇanipuṇam || 16|| itītthaṃ mugdhānāmiha mativimohāya kudhiyaḥ kutarkaprāgalbhīmukharitamukhā mūḍhamanasaḥ | adhiṣṭhātāraṃ tvāṃ varada jaḍavargasya sadayaṃ na jānanti svāmin paramapuruṣaṃ cetanamamī || 17|| yathopādānaṃ mṛttadanu sahakārīha laguḍo jalaṃ cakraṃ sūtraṃ varada jaḍavargo'yamakhilaḥ | na yatnaṃ kaulālaṃ prabhavati vinā kumbhaghaṭane tathādhiṣṭhātāraṃ na bhavati vinā tvāṃ bhavavidhiḥ || 18|| avijñāyaivā'jñaḥ paruṣaviṣamaṃ karma kurute vipāke tasyāsau nipatati bhavakleśakalile | ato jñānālokaḥ prakaṭitasamastārthagahano mahāmohadhvāntavyavahitadṛśo'vaśyamucitaḥ || 19|| upāyastatprāptau bhavati na vinā śāstramaparo na śāstraṃ tatvāminniha yadupadiṣṭaṃ na bhavatā | viviñcantaḥ santo hitamahitamete vidadhate hite saktiṃ muñcantyahitamiti nārhanti patanam || 20|| bhavāndharmaṃ sākṣādakṛta sahajajñānamahasā tamodhvaṃsaṃ puṃsāmatha tadupadeśena vidadhe | pramāṇaṃ coktiste nahi ghanaghṛṇānighnamanaso jagadbhartturyuktaṃ vitathamabhidhātuṃ bhagavataḥ || 21|| tadetatkāruṇyaṃ ghanatamatamaḥpaṅkapaṭalī- vilīno'yaṃ lokastava varada sambhāvya sahajam | dadhacchraddhābandhaṃ tvaduditamanuṣṭhātumasakṛt pravṛtto duṣpāraṃ hara tarati saṃsārajaladhim || 22|| ityevaṃ bhagavannabandhyamahimā nirmāya nirmānuṣaṃ viśvaṃ viśvasitaṃ vitatya tadanu sphītairvibhūtikramaiḥ | saṃhṛtyātha nije mahimni nikhilaṃ tatkandukāndolana- kleśāveśavirāmasambhṛtasukhaṃ kaivalyamākāṅkṣasi || 23|| itthaṃ kiṃ bahunā tvadaṅghrikamaladvandvaprasādādidaṃ bhūyānme bhavabhītibhañjana vibho bhaktānukampāpara | yattvatpādasarojapūjanavidhau bhaktirvirogaṃ vapu- ryāvajjīvamatha tvadekamanaso muktistavaivāgrataḥ || 24|| evaṃ deva tava stutipravacanaprāptaprasādasya me bhūyo janma bhaviṣyatīti bhagavan manye khapuṣpopamam | syāccetprāktanakarmaśeṣajanitaṃ tannātha kiṃ bhūyasā bhūyāsaṃ bhavadīyapādakamalastutyā punarnirvṛtaḥ || 25|| iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``īśvarapraśaṃsāstotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ pañcatriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 36. stutiphalaprāptistotraṃ ṣaṭtriṃśaṃ stotram te nātha janma sakalaṃ na kalaṅkayanti na drohakarmarasikānapi śaṅkayanti | tānsaspṛhaṃ mṛgadṛśaḥ pravilokayanti ye tvatpadābjarajasā'likamaṅkayanti || 1|| te vidviṣāmabhimataṃ hṛdi moghayanti jñānāmṛtaṃ ca kṛpaṇeṣu samarpayanti | teṣāṃ vacaḥ kṣitibhujo'pi na laṅghayanti ye tvāṃ stavoktikusumarddhibhirarcayanti || 2|| te janmanaḥ phalamanalpamudañcayanti kleśāpadaḥ svamaparaṃ ca vimocayanti | tānvairiṇaḥ sahabhuvo'pi na vañcayanti ye tvāmanāthajanabāndhavamarcayanti || 3|| te dharmamindukarasundaramarjayanti gīrbhirvidagdhahṛdayānyapi rañjayanti | tānantakabhrukuṭayo'pi na tarjayanti ye tvāṃ bhavāmayaharaṃ hara pūjayanti || 4|| te tvatstutiṃ hṛdayadhāmni kavāṭayanti duḥkhadrumaṃ ca dṛḍhamāpadi pāṭayanti | bhāvaṃ tavaiva bhuvi bālamivāṭayanti ye vāṅnaṭīmabhimukhaṃ tava nāṭayanti || 5|| te karmarajjunigaḍaṃ hyatikhaṇḍayanti sūktaiḥ śrutīrbudhajanasya ca maṇḍayanti | tvadbhaktimapyadhibhavābdhi taraṇḍayanti ye tvanmanaḥ stutidhanasya karaṇḍayanti || 6|| pāpāni te'śmaśakalāni va cūrṇayanti gīrbhirbruvaḥ sumanasāmapi ghūrṇayanti | loke nijāni ca yaśāṃsyupakarṇayanti ye dhīmatāṃ nutikathāstava varṇayanti || 7|| te mārakānapi na saṃyati ghātayanti kāruṇyataḥ kṛtaruṣopi na yātayanti | lokasya śokamabhayena ca śātayanti ye śekharaṃ caraṇayostava pātayanti || 8|| te pāpapāśa(karmabandha)madhikaṃ hṛdi kartayanti bhogaspṛhāṃ ca viṣayeṣu nivartayanti | sūktaiḥ sacetanamanāṃsyapi nartayanti ye candracūḍacaritaṃ tava kīrtayanti || 9|| te jānmikāni duritānyavasādayanti sūktāni nirmalamatīnanuvādayanti | gītāni vaiṇikanaṭānapi nādayanti ye bhaktitastava nutīḥ pratipādayanti || 10|| te satsu karmasu ripūnapi codayanti gīrbhiḥ satāṃ ca hṛdayāni vinodayanti | teṣāṃ śucaḥ kvacana cetasi nodayanti ye tāvakāni caritānyanumodayanti || 11|| te vigrahogramanasopi na khedayanti mohaṃ dṛḍhārgalanibhaṃ hṛdi bhedayanti | svaṃ kauśalaṃ mṛdumatīnapi vedayanti sūktāni ye tava nijāni nivedayanti || 12|| te bhejuṣāṃ bhavati bhaktimamandayanti vāgvīrudhastvayi ratiṃ hṛdi kandayanti | tvāmanyadarśanagatānapi vandayanti ye vāgbhareṇa hṛdayaṃ tava nandayanti || 13|| te bhuktimuktisaphalarddhi vivarddhayanti satkarma śarma śamitādhi ca sādhayanti | ye tvāṃ navairabhinavairabhirādhayanti yānikṣusāramadhurān sudhiyo dhayanti || 14|| te saṅgare gururuṣo'pi na yodhayanti jñānāmṛtena hṛdayaṃ ca viśodhayanti | roṣodbhavaṃ hṛdi riporapi rodhayanti ye tvāṃ nijā nutikathāḥ pratibodhayanti || 15|| te durmadānbudhasadasyavamānayanti prauḍhānpraṇamya vinayena ca mānayanti | tānbhūtayaḥ svayamananyasamānayanti ye vāsarāṃstava navaiḥ saśamā nayanti || 16|| te nirbhaye natimataḥ pathi yāpayanti notkampadānapi ripūnupatāpayanti | kleśāpadaṃ paśusamānapi hāpayanti ye tvāṃ prasādya dṛśamīśvara dāpayanti || 17|| te durmadaṃ śamanamugramadarpayanti gardhaṃ ca sādhusadanādapasarpayanti | dānādinārthinivahānapi tarpayanti ye tāvake mukuṭamaṅghritale'rpayanti || 18|| te sadgṛheṣu gurumāpadamalpayanti svaṃ cāśayaṃ śiśayiṣostava talpayanti | ārtispṛśāmupakṛtīrapi kalpayanti ye bālakānapi navaṃ tava jalpayanti || 19|| te sāparādhamanaso'pi na kopayanti tāpaṃ hviyā vipulamāpadi gopayanti | tvaddhāma cāmalamatīnadhiropayanti ye nārcanaṃ tava kadācana lopayanti || 20|| te śaktimapratihatāṃ bhuvi jṛmbhayanti prītiṃ parāṃ kṛtamatīnupalambhayanti | vaṃśatrayīmapi nijāmabhiśobhayanti ye tvāṃ nijāsu nutisūktiṣu lobhayanti || 21|| te magnamārttajanamāpadi tārayanti buddhyā vimṛśya sadasacca vicārayanti | ajñānamānatimatāṃ ca nivārayanti tvadbhaktimindudhara ye hṛdi dhārayanti || 22|| te vidviṣaḥ sthiraruṣo'pyanukūlayanti mohaṃ mahīruhamiva pravimūlayanti | ājñāṃ ca mūrdhni mahatāmavacūlayanti ye bhālamaṅghrirajasā tava dhūlayanti || 23|| te paṅkamaṅkagatamātmani dhāvayanti diṅmaṇḍalaṃ ca paritaḥ paripāvayanti | kleśān kṣaṇāttṛṇagaṇāniva lāvayanti ye tvāṃ prakāśavapuṣaṃ hṛdi bhāvayanti || 24|| te pīvarīṃ vipadamokasi karśayanti svaṃ kauśalaṃ sumanasaśca vimarśayanti | prītiṃ satāṃ ca hṛdayeṣu niveśayanti ye tvatstutīrvibudhasadmasu darśayanti || 25|| te nirmalaṃ sukṛtamātmani poṣayanti duṣkarmakardamamalaṃ hṛdi śoṣayanti | krūrān virodhabidhurānapi toṣayanti ye nāma te śivaśivetyabhighoṣayanti || 26|| te viśvameva caritairabhibhūṣayanti kruddhān viruddhahṛdayā~śca na dūṣayanti | nātyudbhaṭānyamabhaṭānapi roṣayanti rāgeṇa ye śiva manastava toṣayanti || 27|| te tvāṃ kṛpāmbutṛṣite hṛdi varṣayanti svāntaukaso'ghabhujagānapi karṣayanti | kampaṃ vidhāya ca yamaṃ bhruvi dharṣayanti ye tvāṃ nijai(navai)rnutipadairhara harṣayanti || 28|| te maunamudri tagiro'pyupahāsayanti gīrbhirmukhāni sudhiyāmadhivāsayanti | viśvaṃ yaśobhiramalairabhibhāsayanti ye mānasaṃ tava navaiḥ pravikāsayanti || 29|| te cittabhittimasatāmapi citrayanti roṣoddhatānarijanānapi mitrayanti | sūktāmṛtaiśca bhuvameva pavitrayanti vāṅnāvi ye tava caritramaritrayanti || 30|| cetāṃsi te sukṛtināmupabṛṃhayanti bāhyāntarānasuhṛdaśca nibarhayanti | nātmānamānatamarīnapi garhayanti ye tvāṃ navastavavibhūtibhirarhayanti || 31|| ātmānaṃ te kaluṣakalile magnamuccālayanti jñānāmbhobhirmalamalikulaśyāmalaṃ kṣālayanti | smṛtvā ca tvāṃ pramadarabhasādaṃsamāsphālayanti tvadbhaktyā ye sakalamalasaṃ cittamuttālayanti || 32|| te rāmāṇāṃ manasi madanaṃ suptamunnidrayanti ślāghāṃ labdhuṃ sadasi ca satāṃ cittamunmudrayanti | tānudvṛttāḥ kuṭilamatayo na kvacicchidrayanti tvaccittaṃ ye varada karuṇākranditairārdrayanti || 33|| te sabhyānāṃ sadasi nayanānyaśru visrāvayanti krodhotkarṣaṃ gurumururuṣāṃ dūramutprāvayanti | cetaḥ sūktairmaṇimiva satāmaindavaṃ drāvayanti svāminye tvāmabhinavanavavyāhṛtīḥ śrāvayanti || 34|| teṣāṃ sūktīramalamatayaḥ pūgavaccarvayanti krūrāṇāṃ te madamabhimukhaṃ preṅkhitaṃ kharvayanti | tānvidvāṃsastava navasudhāsvādanāyāhvayanti tvatpādāgre muditamanaso ye śiraḥ prahvayanti || 35|| te durvṛttānapi na kṛpayā peśalāḥ kleśayanti glāniṃ jñānāṃ vyasanajanitāmāśaye nāśayanti | tṛṣṇārttānapyamṛtamadhurāḥ svā giraḥ prāśayanti tvāmantarye śakalitakalikleśamāveśayanti || 36|| te rāgādīnmanasi militānāśu viśleṣayanti krodhāndhānapyatanuvinayā na kvaciddveṣayanti | mohadhvāntaṃ ghanamadhimativyoma niḥśeṣayanti tvatpārśvaṃ ye giramabhimataprāptaye preṣayanti || 37|| te nirvedaṃ manasi śamināmahnu taṃ hrāsayanti trastānastaṅgamitavipadaḥ śaśvadāśvāsayanti | tvadbhāvaikapravaṇabhaṇitairantakaṃ trāsayanti stutyā ye tvāṃ natajanahṛtatrāsamullāsayanti || 38|| te tajjñānāṃ pariṣadi guṇānātmanaḥ śaṃsayanti svānte cāntaryamabhujagajaṃ sādhvasaṃ dhvaṃsayanti | kleśānpāśāniva ca nibiḍānāśu visraṃsayanti prauḍhānāṃ ye tava nutimadhiśrotramuttaṃsayanti || 39|| te tvadbhaktivyasanamanaghaṃ karma nirvāhayanti tvatsevāsu sthiramavirataṃ cittamutsāhayanti | svaṃ cāghaughaṃ yamamadanavattvaddṛśā dāhayanti tvāṃ vijñaptiṃ svayamavahitaṃ ye'nvahaṃ grāhayanti || 40|| te takṣāṇaṃ tarumiva guruṃ tvāmaghaṃ takṣayanti prāptuṃ tṛptiṃ śubhaphalabharaṃ nirbharaṃ bhakṣayanti | pratyāsannāṃ śriyamapi dhiyā tīkṣṇayā lakṣayanti tvadbhaktānye śrutimiva nutiṃ tāvakīṃ śikṣayanti || 41|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``stutiphalaprāptistotraṃ'' nāmakaṃ ṣaṭtriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 37. stutipraśaṃsāstotraṃ saptatriṃśaṃ stotram iha hi svātmamaheśvaraparibhāvanaśuddhasaṃvidaḥ sudhiyaḥ | kamaladalāni jalairiva bahirāvaraṇairna lipyante || 1|| kavimukhakamalopavane kṛtavasatirjayati sūktikalpalatā | yā phalati bhuktimuktī śivabhaktisudhārasāsekaiḥ || 2|| jaya jaya hara rakṣa bhayādevaṃ devaṃ śivaṃ śivaṃ labdhum | yaḥ stauti tasya saphalaḥ sāraḥ sārasvataḥ svataḥ sphāraḥ || 3|| śiva śiva śaṅkara śaṅkara bhavagatiriti yaḥ pralāpamukharamukhaḥ | tasya hi saphalā divasāḥ śivasāyujyaṃ ca hastagatam || 4|| iha khalu paśupatinutibhiḥ katipayamapi yaḥ kṛtārthayati kālam | sakalakalikaluṣamukto jīvanmuktaḥ sa kiṃ bahunā || 5|| upacitakuśalaśreṇiḥ paramapadārohaṇaikaniśreṇiḥ | jayati mahāmṛtaveṇirvibudhajanāhlādinī nutiḥ śambhoḥ || 6|| kimiyaṃ sadgurudṛṣṭirhlādaikamayī nu kiṃ jagatsṛṣṭiḥ | kiṃ vā nirabhravṛṣṭiḥ śravaṇāmṛtavarṣiṇī nutiḥ śambhoḥ || 7|| akṣayasukhopabhuktiḥ paramaśivāvāptaye navā yuktiḥ | yadi vā jīvanmuktiḥ śravaṇāmṛtavarṣiṇī nutiḥ śambhoḥ || 8|| kṣetraṃ tadiha pavitraṃ tattīrthaṃ pāvanaṃ tadāyatanam | tadiha tapovanamanaghaṃ yatra nutiḥ śāmbhavī śrutiṃ viśati || 9|| sā krīḍā sā goṣṭhī sā viśrāntiḥ sa bhūmikālābhaḥ | sā'khiladuḥkhanivṛttiryatra nutiḥ śāmbhavī śrutiṃ viśati || 10|| taddhyānaṃ sa samādhiḥ sa mahāyāgastadarcanaṃ sakalam | sā khalu paramā dīkṣā yatra nutiḥ śāmbhavī śrutiṃ viśati || 11|| yadi pārijātakusumastavakastava karṇayoralaṅkaraṇam | bhavituṃ bhavati na sulabhaḥ śrutipathametā naya stutīḥ śambhoḥ || 12|| abhilaṣasi yadi niroddhuṃ pavanādapi durgrahaṃ manohariṇam | tadimā gṛhāṇa nibhṛtaṃ dṛḍhaguṇaguṇagumphitāḥ stutīḥ śambhoḥ || 13|| yadamṛtamambudhimanthanasamutthitaṃ tasya kaḥ svidāsvādaḥ | iti yadi hṛdi tava kautukamākarṇaya tatstutīrimāḥ śambhoḥ || 14|| viṣayopabhogarahitaḥ sahajo hlādaḥ satāṃ mato mokṣaḥ | tamapi yadīcchasi veditumavahitahṛdayaḥ śa‍ṛṇu stutīḥ śambhoḥ || 15|| aśuci śucāmāyatanaṃ malakalilamidaṃ kalevaraṃ satyam | bhagavadupāsanasādhanamiti bhavati na kasya kamanīyam || 16|| yadi manuṣe yamaniyamaprāṇāyāmādi durghaṭaṃ karttum | tadimaṃ sugamamupāyaṃ śraya paramapadāptaye nutiṃ śambhoḥ || 17|| siddhaṃ samyagabhīṣṭaṃ satyagirāmāśiṣaḥ satāṃ phalitāḥ | labdhaṃ sukṛtasya phalaṃ nirvyūḍheyaṃ yataḥ stutiḥ śambhoḥ || 18|| mama sāraḥ saṃsāraḥ sakalamidaṃ martyajanma mama saphalam | mama sadṛśo'sti na kaścana yadahaṃ stotā śivasya saṃvṛttaḥ || 19|| praṇamāmi praṇamāmi staumi staumi prabhuṃ jagannātham | dhyāyāmi dhyāyāmi ca yāmi ca vimalaṃ paraṃ dhāma || 20|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``stutipraśaṃsā'' nāmakaṃ saptatriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 38. puṇyapariṇāmastotraṃ aṣṭātriṃśaṃ stotram sahasraśīrṣā puruṣaḥ punātu vaḥ sahasracakṣurbhagavān sahasrapāt | gale'ṅghrimūle nayane ca niścalā- strayo'pyamī yaṃ puruṣā upāsate || 1|| (upāsate yaṃ puruṣāstrayo'pyamī)|| 1|| sarasvatīvendukalodgatā karaiḥ sarasvatīva śravaṇāmṛtaiḥ svaraiḥ | sarasvatīvormibhirīśvarastavaiḥ sarasvatī varṣatu vaḥ sudhāmiyam || 2|| vimarśaśūnyena mayā nirarthakaḥ khalena kālaḥ sakalo'tivāhitaḥ | idaṃ tvasārādatisāramuddhṛtaṃ dhṛtaṃ yadīśastutivetanaṃ manaḥ || 3|| na hṛdyatāmeti parasya durmukhaḥ śiśuḥ sravatpīnasadigdhanāsikaḥ | pituḥ svakīyasya tu jīvitādhika- stathopahāsyo'pi mamā'yamudyamaḥ || 4|| avaimi bhāgyopacayaḥ sa puṣkalaḥ saśaktipātaḥ khalu pārameśvaraḥ | sa vā mahārho mahatāmanugraho yadīśvarārādhanasādhanaṃ manaḥ || 5|| aho kṛtārtho'smi manobhirāmayā girā guṇālaṅkṛtayeha rāmayā | tanuḥ sthireyaṃ dhriyate nirāmayā bhave ca yadbhaktirabhaṅgurā mayā || 6|| na vidyayā prītiranarghamānayā tathā śriyā vā'nvahamedhamānayā | śivastavaikavratayā'samānayā (mamānayā) yathā girā sāndrasudhāsamānayā || 7|| puraḥ sphurantaṃ vimṛśanmaheśvaraṃ vilīnavedyāntaravedano daśām | navastavollekhavidhau spṛśāmi yāṃ mamāntarātmā vibhureva vetti tām || 8|| manuṣyatā pūruṣatā'gryavarṇatā manīṣitā satkavitā śivaikatā | iyaṃ mama kṣemaparamparā vibhoḥ stutiprasaṅgena gatā kṛtārthatām || 9|| dhruvaṃ navānāṃ rasagarbhanirbhara- dhvanirghanānāmanagheyamāvaliḥ | pṛthuprabhāvaṃ śaśikhaṇḍamaṇḍitaṃ praharṣiṇaṃ nīlagalaṃ kariṣyati || 10|| yadi hyayogyāścaraṇāntike vayaṃ tathāpi naḥ prāṅgaṇasīmasevinām | camatkariṣyanti giraḥ prabhorimā janaṅgamānāmiva gītarītayaḥ || 11|| paropakārairiva rājasevanaṃ daridragārhasthyamivārthitarpaṇaiḥ | idaṃ bahukleśamapīśvarastavai- ravaimi varṣma spṛhaṇīyamātmanaḥ || 12|| (vapurbahukleśamapīdamīśvarastavai- ravaimi spṛhaṇīyamātmanaḥ)|| 12|| sahasrapatrairiva palvalodakaṃ śiraḥ phaṇīndrasya maṇivrajairiva | sadoṣamapyetadavaimi mānuṣaṃ manoramaṃ janma maheśvarastavaiḥ || 13|| mṛgendraśāvā iva kandarodarā- tkarīndrakumbhādiva mauktikotkarāḥ | viniḥsarantaḥ kaviturmukhādamī manojñatāṃ bibhrati kasya na stavāḥ || 14|| marālamālā sarasīva nirmale kucasthale hāralateva subhruvām | iyaṃ bhavatvābharaṇaṃ maheśvara- stavāvalī vaktrasaroruhe satām || 15|| imāṃ ghanaśreṇimivonmukhaḥ śikhī cakorakaḥ kārtikacandrikāmiva | rathāṅganāmā taraṇeriva tviṣaṃ stavāvalīṃ vīkṣya na kaḥ pramodate || 16|| madhuvrataḥ saumanasīmiva srajaṃ sitacchadaḥ paṅkajakarṇikāmiva | piko vikoṣāmiva cūtamañjarī- mimāṃ na kaścarvayati stavāvalīm || 17|| manasvinīnāmiva sāci vīkṣitaṃ stanandhayānāmiva mugdhajalpitam | avaśyamāsāṃ madhu sūktivīrudhāṃ manīṣiṇāṃ mānasamārdrayiṣyati || 18|| iyaṃ madhuśrīriva kelikānanaṃ sarovaraṃ prāvṛḍivātapakṣatam | stavāvalī kāvyakutūhalaṃ satā- makālajīrṇaṃ taruṇīkariṣyati || 19|| vimatsarāṇāṃ sadasadvivekināṃ mahātmanāṃ mūrdhni dhṛto'yamañjaliḥ | vilokayantu prabhugauravādimāṃ prasādabuddhyā mayi vā stavāvalīm || 20|| stavāvalīḍhaukanakārpaṇacchalā- dalabhyamabhyarṇacaraiḥ surairapi | prabhoḥ padasparśamaśaṅkamīpsato vikatthanatvepi na me viḍambanā || 21|| kalimalamaṣīkalmāṣo'yaṃ manomukuraḥ puraḥ sphuritamapi na vyaktaṃ vastu grahītumabhavatkṣamaḥ | sapadi viśadaiḥ śabdabrahmormibhirvimalīkṛte karabadaravatpaśyāmo'smin samastamidaṃ jagat || 22|| ānandini stuvati nandini gūḍhamarthaṃ devaścamatkṛtikṛtāṅgulibhaṅgabhaṅgiḥ | aṅgasthitāṃ bhagavatīmadhirūḍhahāsā- māsāmavaśyamavabodhayati stutīnām || 23|| manye manovacanakarmabhiradbhutāni yānyūrjitāni sukṛtāni purākṛtāni | etāni tāni śivabhaktipavitritāni karṇāmṛtāni phalitāni subhāṣitāni || 24|| ete prabhoḥ pramathabhartturabhīṣṭamaṣṭā- triṃśatstavā vimṛśatāṃ viduṣāṃ diśantu | tenaiva dṛkṣu dhṛtagharmakarāmṛtāṃśu- saptārciṣāmiva kalāḥ sakalārthalābham || 25|| ayamiha kiṅkareṇa racitaścaraṇāmbujayoḥ ``stutikusumāñjali''rbhagavatastaruṇendubhṛtaḥ | aviralabhaktisiktanavasūktilatā'vacitaḥ kalayatu saurabheṇa sukṛtāṃ spṛhayālu manaḥ || 26|| ayi pramathanāyaka trijagatāmadhiṣṭhāyaka prasannamukha ṣaṇmukha tridaśavandya nandīśvara | nivedayata bhaktitaścaraṇakiṅkareṇā'rpitaṃ puraḥ purariporimaṃ vikacavākyapuṣpāñjalim || 27|| iti pariṣadi siṃhasyandanaskandanandi- prabhṛtibhirabhirāddhairvandyamāvedyamānam | stutikusumasamūhaṃ prābhṛtīkṛtya śambho- ryadamalamupalabdhaṃ śarma tenedamastu || 28|| bhuvi bhuvi kuvikalpaḥ svalpatāmetu jetuṃ dhuri dhuri duritaughaṃ varddhatāṃ śuddhabodhaḥ | pathi pathi mathitogravyāpadāpannatāpā nari nari paripūrṇā jṛmbhatāṃ śambhubhaktiḥ || 29|| iti śubhaṃ bhagavaccaritastuti- vyatikareṇa yadarjitamūrjitam | bhavatu tena manasyanapāyinī sukṛtināṃ śivabhakticamatkṛtiḥ || 30|| iti kāśmīrakamahākaviśrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracite bhagavato maheśvarasya stutikusumāñjalau ``puṇyapariṇāmastotraṃ'' nāmaṣṭātriṃśaṃ stotraṃ sampūrṇam | 39. granthakarturvaṃśavarṇanam purā purāreḥ padadhūlidhūsaraḥ sarasvatīsvairavihārabhūrabhūt | viśālavaṃśaśrutavṛttaviśruto vipaścitāṃ ``gauradharaḥ'' kilā'graṇīḥ || 1|| bhramādanirmāya purātanaḥ kavi- ryamagrimaślokamavaśyamagrataḥ | vimṛśya paṅkterupari dvijanmanāṃ nyavīviśatkākapadāṅkitaṃ punaḥ || 2|| anantasiddhāntapathāntagāminaḥ samastaśāstrārṇavapāradṛśvanaḥ | ṛjuryajurvedapadārthavarṇanā vyanakti yasyā'dbhutaviśrutaṃ śrutam || 3|| suto'bhavadratnadharaḥ śiromaṇi- rmanīṣiṇāmasya guṇaughasāgaraḥ | yamāśritāhvāsta sarasvatī hare- ruraḥsthalaṃ ``ratnadharaṃ'' śritāṃ śriyam || 4|| udārasattvaṃ vipulaṃ sunirmalaṃ prarūḍhamaryādamagādhamāśayam | praviśya yasya svavaśā sarasvatī padaṃ babandha sthiramambudheriva || 5|| kapoladolāyitakarṇabhūṣaṇaṃ taraṅgitabhrūyugabhaṅgurālikam | sacetasāmardhanimīlitekṣaṇaṃ kṣaṇaṃ vitanvanti mukhaṃ yaduktayaḥ || 6|| athā'sya dhīmānudapādi vādināṃ vitīrṇamudro vadaneṣvanekaśaḥ | udārasaṃskārasusārabhāratī- pavitravaktrāmburuho ``jagaddharaḥ'' || 7|| api sthavīyaḥsvakṛtasthirasthitiḥ kuśāgratīkṣṇāmadhiruhya yanmatim | aho bata svairavihāralīlayā padaṃ nyadhādaskhalitaṃ sarasvatī || 8|| nirmatsaraḥ sahṛdayaḥ śrutapāradṛśvā viśvātiśāyivinayaḥ priyavāk suśīlaḥ | kiṃ vā'paraṃ kavigirāṃ sadasadvicāra- cāturyadhuryadhiṣaṇaḥ śaraṇaṃ ya ekaḥ || 9|| tenādṛtena śiśunaiva nivedyamāna- mānandakandalitabhaktikutūhalena | etaṃ mṛgāṅkakalikākalitāvataṃsa- śaṃsārasāyanarasaṃ rasayantu santaḥ || 10|| gṛhṇantu kañcana viśeṣamaśeṣamasmā- dasmākamāttavacanāḥ(nāt)kvacanā'ntarajñāḥ | cinvanti palvalajalātkuśalā viśāla- śevālajālakalilātkamalaughameva || 11|| yadyapyāsāmanalasarasasphārasāraṃ na kiñci- dvācāmantarviracitacamatkāramastyarthatattvam | tatrā'pyetāstribhuvanagurustotramaitrīpavitrāḥ karṇābhyarṇābharaṇasaraṇiṃ netumarhanti santaḥ || 12|| premāṇaṃ maṇikarṇikāṃ prati budhā mandīkurudhvaṃ matiṃ muktādāmani mākṛta spṛśata mā tāmbūlahevākitām | bhūṣārthaṃ prabhavanti karṇapuline kaṇṭhe mukhāmbhoruhe devasya smaraśāsanasya yadimāḥ stotrāvalīsūktayaḥ || 13|| nikṣiptaṃ śatasaptakena sahitaṃ pādāyutārdhaṃ mayā nirhiṃse guṇini dvijendramukuṭe dharmaikadhāmnīśvare | prāyeṇa kliśitasya dīnavacasaḥ kṣmākṣiptamūrdhno'pi me pādaṃ naikamayaṃ prayacchati vidhau vakre karomyatra kim || 14|| kāraṅkāramakāri vāritaśamairakṣairarakṣairidaṃ nighnaṃ vighnitaśambhusevanasukhābhogopabhogaṃ manaḥ | kintu kvāpi kadāpi kā'pi patitā sā sādhudṛṣṭiryataḥ prāptaḥ sūktivapurjitorjitasudhāsvādaḥ prasādaḥ prabhoḥ || 15|| yatsatyaṃ sadasadvivekavikalagrāmīṇakagrāmaṇī- mithyāstotraparā parābhavabhuvaṃ nītāsi bhītāsyataḥ | mātaḥ kātaratāṃ vimuñca yadasau saubhāgyabhāgyāvadhiḥ sañjāto jagadekanāthanutibhirvāgdevi te vibhramaḥ || 16|| iti śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭakavivaṃśāvalīvivaraṇaṃ sampūrṇam | || iti kāśmīrakamahākavi śrīmajjagaddharabhaṭṭaviracitaḥ stutikusumāñjaliḥ sampūrṇā || Notes Stutikusumāñjaliḥ stutikusumāṅjaliḥ is a composition by Kāśmīra Mahākavi kāśmīra mahākavi Jagaddhara Bhaṭṭa jagaddharabhaṭṭa who belongs to the lineage of Ratnadhara ratnadhara (father)and Gauradhara gauradhara (grandfather). Proofread by Ruma Dewan % Text title : Stutikusumanjalih % File name : stutikusumAnjaliH.itx % itxtitle : stutikusumAnjaliH (jagaddharabhaTTavirachite) % engtitle : stutikusumAnjaliH % Category : major_works, sangraha, jagaddharabhatta, kAshmIrashaivadarshanam % Location : doc_z_misc_major_works % Sublocation : major_works % Author : jagaddharabhaTTa % Language : Sanskrit % Subject : philosophy/hinduism/religion % Proofread by : Ruma Dewan % Indexextra : (1, 2, 3) % Latest update : June 25, 2024 % Send corrections to : sanskrit at cheerful dot c om % Site access : https://sanskritdocuments.org
Source: sanskritdocuments.org

More Shiva Stotras

Ardhanārīśvara Stotram11 versesBilvāṣṭakam12 versesCandraśekharāṣṭakam15 versesDvādaśajyotirliṅgāni5 versesKālabhairava Aṣṭakam11 verses